Selected quad for the lemma: heaven_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heaven_n earth_n new_a world_n 16,134 5 6.0041 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A42554 A prospect of heaven, or, A treatise of the happiness of the saints in glory wherein is described the nature and quality, the excellency and certainty of it : together with the circumstances, substance and adjuncts of that glory : the unspeakable misery of those that lose it, and the right way to obtain it : shewing also the disproportion between the saints present sufferings, and their future glory : many weighty questions discussed and divers cases cleered / by William Gearing ... Gearing, William. 1673 (1673) Wing G437; ESTC R31518 196,122 394

There are 44 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

manner_n of_o bondage_n into_o perfect_a liberty_n yet_o st._n paul_n oppose_v the_o creature_n to_o the_o elect_n in_o those_o word_n not_o only_o they_o but_o we_o also_o and_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o state_n into_o which_o the_o creature_n be_v to_o be_v deliver_v according_a to_o their_o capacity_n the_o future_a glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o exemplar_n of_o the_o creature_n glory_n the_o elect_n be_v to_o be_v deliver_v primary_o the_o creature_n secondary_o the_o elect_n be_v not_o mean_v 3._o by_o creature_n we_o be_v not_o to_o understand_v those_o creature_n which_o be_v breed_v of_o dung_n and_o corruption_n the_o excrement_n of_o nature_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o understand_v those_o creature_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n curse_n upon_o the_o creature_n as_o a_o penalty_n of_o man_n transgression_n as_o thorn_n thistle_n briar_n and_o such_o like_a these_o shall_v be_v turn_v into_o nothing_o but_o 4._o by_o creature_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o element_n and_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n which_o he_o make_v at_o first_o very_o good_a in_o themselves_o wherein_o his_o glory_n do_v much_o appear_v and_o be_v for_o the_o great_a delight_n content_n and_o necessary_a use_n of_o man_n as_o live_v creature_n the_o fowl_n which_o be_v the_o host_n and_o ornament_n of_o heaven_n the_o beast_n and_o all_o plant_n which_o be_v the_o host_n and_o ornament_n of_o the_o earth_n these_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v for_o this_o opinion_n reas_n 1._o because_o the_o apostle_n ver_fw-la 19_o speak_v indefinite_o the_o creature_n likewise_o in_o ver_fw-la 20.21_o but_o ver_fw-la 22._o as_o if_o he_o will_v put_v all_o out_o of_o doubt_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o whole_a creation_n or_o omnis_fw-la creatura_fw-la as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o your_o bibles_n this_o be_v a_o know_a rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n when_o there_o be_v many_o word_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o latter_a be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o former_a 2._o because_o all_o the_o creature_n which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o creation_n be_v very_o good_a be_v all_o equal_o subject_a to_o bondage_n to_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n and_o all_o the_o creature_n do_v desire_v their_o own_o perfection_n and_o preservation_n as_o well_o as_o some_o creature_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o some_o shall_v be_v frustrate_v of_o these_o their_o natural_a desire_n and_o other_o shall_v not_o 3._o because_o they_o who_o hold_v that_o only_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v renew_v and_o not_o other_o creature_n can_v without_o reason_n conceive_v that_o the_o heaven_n earth_n and_o element_n can_v be_v without_o their_o ornament_n if_o so_o than_o the_o earth_n will_v be_v under_o great_a bondage_n of_o vanity_n then_o now_o it_o be_v it_o shall_v then_o be_v void_a of_o all_o form_n and_o beauty_n now_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o give_v for_o their_o opinion_n be_v because_o these_o and_o not_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v only_o capable_a of_o immortality_n but_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o no_o creature_n be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n capable_a of_o immortality_n the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o immortality_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o depend_v not_o on_o any_o thing_n in_o nature_n therefore_o if_o the_o heaven_n earth_n element_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o a_o immortal_a state_n as_o the_o schoolman_n think_v god_n who_o give_v they_o immo_n tallity_n may_v allow_v the_o same_o benefit_n to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n as_o unto_o they_o all_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o gift_n of_o immortality_n if_o god_n bestow_v it_o sect_n ii_o quest_n 2._o second_o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o creature_n deliverance_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n resp_n touch_v this_o i_o find_v two_o contrary_a opinion_n both_o ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o both_o have_v learned_a and_o godly_a man_n for_o their_o patron_n 1._o some_o conceive_v that_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o creation_n from_o this_o bondage_n be_v by_o a_o total_a abolition_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o whole_a creation_n the_o creature_n be_v make_v for_o man_n quatenus_fw-la viator_n non_fw-la comprehensor_fw-la world_n v.d._n dr_n ha_o kwel'_v apologvof_o the_o power_n of_o god_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o creature_n cease_v to_o be_v say_v they_o than_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n and_o for_o this_o their_o opinion_n they_o allege_v job_n 14.12_o where_o it_o be_v say_v man_n lie_v down_o and_o rise_v not_o till_o the_o heaven_n be_v no_o more_o isai_n 51.6_o the_o heaven_n shall_v vanish_v away_o like_a smoke_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v wax_v old_a like_o a_o garment_n but_o my_o salvation_n shall_v be_v for_o ever_o and_o my_o righteousness_n shall_v not_o be_v abolish_v matth._n 24.35_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o 2_o pet._n 3.10_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n in_o the_o which_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o with_o a_o great_a noise_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o fervent_a heat_n the_o earth_n also_o and_o the_o work_n that_o be_v therein_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o which_o they_o expound_v of_o the_o substance_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o present_a heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o work_n in_o they_o say_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v burn_v to_o ash_n so_o piscator_fw-la loc._n piscat_fw-la in_o loc._n from_o these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n they_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o ash_n to_o nothing_o because_o ●●●s_v say_v they_o shall_v perish_v they_o shall_v pass_v away_o ●hey_n shall_v be_v burn_v up_o which_o import_v annihilation_n divers_a argument_n be_v bring_v for_o the_o confirmation_n hereof_o chief_o from_o the_o uselessness_n of_o the_o creature_n in_o that_o estate_n when_o man_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o need_n of_o the_o creature_n why_o shall_v they_o be_v any_o more_o what_o use_n will_v there_o be_v of_o the_o sun_n or_o star_n to_o enlighten_v he_o the_o scripture_n say_v in_o heaven_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n and_o those_o that_o be_v there_o need_v no_o candle_n neither_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o light_n etc._n etc._n revel_v 22.5_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n say_v they_o of_o earth_n or_o water_n for_o the_o refreshment_n and_o use_n of_o man_n of_o no_o beast_n or_o fowl_n to_o feed_v on_o of_o none_o of_o the_o creature_n to_o serve_v he_o when_o man_n shall_v have_v a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o be_v raise_v to_o a_o incorruptible_a state_n he_o will_v be_v far_o above_o the_o use_n of_o these_o thing_n therefore_o say_v they_o why_o shall_v these_o thing_n be_v that_o will_v be_v of_o no_o use_n at_o all_o moreover_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o man_n be_v that_o after_o god_n have_v by_o fire_n destroy_v this_o present_a world_n then_o will_v he_o either_o out_o of_o nothing_o or_o out_o of_o the_o ash_n create_v new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n in_o 2_o pet._n 3.13_o which_o be_v express_v in_o isa_n 66.22_o 2._o there_o be_v sundry_a other_o that_o hold_v that_o these_o present_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o substance_n and_o be_v but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o present_a state_n quality_n and_o use_n and_o these_o ha●e_v found_v their_o opinion_n upon_o scripture_n as_o that_o of_o psalm_n 102.26_o where_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v of_o the_o heaven_n say_v they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v etc._n etc._n as_o a_o vesture_n shall_v thou_o change_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v he_o say_v they_o shall_v perish_v but_o here_o he_o interpret_v how_o they_o shall_v perish_v viz._n by_o mutation_n or_o alteration_n not_o by_o destruction_n alteration_n of_o quality_n not_o of_o substance_n and_o the_o hebrew_n word_n in_o piel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o innovate_v alter_v and_o restore_v 2._o so_o st._n paul_n expound_v how_o this_o present_a world_n shall_v pass_v away_o 1_o cor._n 7.31_o the_o fashion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o external_a figure_n the_o state_n of_o this_o present_a world_n shall_v pass_v away_o not_o the_o substance_n but_o the_o outward_a shape_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v do_v away_o 3._o so_o that_o of_o 2_o pet._n 3.6_o where_o he_o compare_v the_o last_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n by_o fire_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n by_o water_n in_o noah_n day_n
the_o flood_n do_v not_o destroy_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o then_o present_a state_n of_o it_o the_o substance_n remain_v after_o the_o flood_n so_o the_o substance_n shall_v remain_v after_o god_n have_v burn_v it_o with_o fire_n if_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v whole_o destroy_v by_o fire_n than_o the_o apostle_n comparison_n be_v in_o vain_a though_o the_o apostle_n use_v the_o word_n perish_a he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o quality_n not_o of_o the_o substance_n as_o when_o silver_n and_o gold_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n the_o dross_n only_o perish_v but_o the_o substance_n remain_v so_o when_o god_n shall_v cast_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n into_o the_o fire_n only_o the_o dross_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v perish_v by_o fire_n not_o the_o substance_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n use_v a_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a which_o signify_v dissolve_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o melt_a as_o of_o metal_n now_o we_o know_v when_o the_o metal_n be_v melt_v they_o be_v not_o consume_v but_o only_o refine_v and_o cleanse_v from_o their_o drossiness_n learned_a mr._n mede_n 3.10_o joseph_n mede_n in_o 2_o pet._n 3.10_o on_o this_o place_n conceive_v that_o this_o fire_n shall_v not_o reach_v to_o the_o starry_a heaven_n but_o he_o understand_v only_o the_o air_n which_o be_v in_o scripture_n call_v the_o heaven_n that_o shall_v together_o with_o the_o earth_n be_v burn_v and_o he_o give_v a_o very_a probable_a reason_n from_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n by_o water_n and_o of_o this_o last_o destruction_n by_o fire_n the_o flood_n do_v not_o by_o many_o thousand_o mile_n reach_v the_o starry_a heaven_n only_o the_o low_a region_n of_o the_o air_n perish_v in_o the_o water_n for_o we_o plain_o read_v that_o the_o water_n do_v swell_v but_o fifteen_o cubit_n above_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n 4._o st._n paul_n in_o that_o place_n rom._n 8._o tell_v we_o that_o this_o present_a creature_n viz._n the_o world_n expect_v hope_v groan_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o its_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n and_o vanity_n if_o god_n shall_v destroy_v these_o heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o nothing_o than_o it_o be_v not_o these_o creature_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n but_o another_o which_o be_v not_o create_v which_o be_v never_o subject_a to_o vanity_n which_o do_v therefore_o never_o groan_v never_o do_v expect_v and_o hope_n for_o deliverance_n because_o yet_o not_o create_v and_o these_o present_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v only_o expect_v their_o destruction_n not_o their_o perfection_n object_n but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o do_v the_o apostle_n call_v it_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n st._n peter_n say_v we_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n etc._n etc._n 2_o pet._n 3.13_o resp_n 1._o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v new_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o state_n 2._o new_a in_o respect_n of_o quality_n and_o property_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o change_n of_o quality_n not_o a_o annihilation_n of_o substance_n 3._o new_a in_o respect_n of_o use_n to_o which_o they_o then_o shall_v serve_v new_a not_o in_o respect_n of_o substance_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o new_a refine_n silver_n gold_n or_o any_o metal_n cast_v into_o a_o melt_a furnace_n may_v be_v call_v new_a in_o respect_n of_o its_o purify_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o substance_n as_o the_o godly_a after_o their_o regeneration_n be_v call_v new_a creature_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o substance_n but_o of_o their_o quality_n sin_n be_v take_v away_o leyders_n totus_fw-la hic_fw-la mundus_fw-la vi●●●●i●is_fw-la p●r_fw-la ignem_fw-la folverdus_fw-fr eque●aci●●●lus_n etc._n etc._n theolog._n leyders_n and_o grace_n be_v infuse_v so_o the_o learned_a professor_n of_o leyden_n reconcile_v these_o opinion_n this_o whole_a visible_a world_n shall_v so_o be_v burn_v up_o by_o the_o last_o fire_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v whole_o purge_v from_o all_o vanity_n which_o sin_n have_v bring_v upon_o it_o as_o metal_n of_o divers_a kind_n when_o melt_v in_o the_o furnace_n be_v purge_v each_o from_o their_o dross_n and_o of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o part_n of_o it_o thus_o purify_v by_o fire_n god_n will_v make_v up_o a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n and_o in_o this_o their_o determination_n i_o for_o my_o own_o part_n will_v acquiess_v without_o lord_v ove●_n the_o faith_n of_o any_o man_n in_o these_o particular_n but_o p●●_n case_n these_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v burn_v to_o ash_n by_o the_o last_o fire_n and_o out_o of_o they_o god_n raise_v a_o new_a earth_n and_o heaven_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o same_o for_o substance_n with_o this_o present_a as_o well_o as_o our_o body_n which_o must_v be_v turn_v into_o dust_n which_o yet_o shall_v be_v raise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n be_v the_o same_o body_n for_o substance_n which_o they_o be_v before_o only_o a_o change_n of_o quality_n now_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n how_o god_n will_v deliver_v the_o creature_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n we_o may_v safe_o doubt_v and_o be_v ignorant_a and_o the_o godly_a may_v be_v of_o divers_a opinion_n about_o it_o without_o any_o violation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o love_n sect_n iii_o quest_n 3._o but_o what_o be_v that_o glory_n whereof_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v partaker_n or_o into_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v deliver_v resp_n 1._o this_o we_o may_v with_o confidence_n assert_v that_o the_o whole_a creation_n shall_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o most_o happy_a state_n beyond_o what_o they_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o creation_n they_o be_v see_v very_o good_a very_o please_v beautiful_a useful_a all_o fill_v with_o so_o much_o goodness_n as_o that_o man_n can_v have_v draw_v much_o contentment_n from_o they_o but_o now_o shall_v be_v make_v better_a more_o beautiful_a more_o excellent_a 2._o they_o shall_v have_v as_o much_o goodness_n restore_v to_o they_o as_o shall_v full_o fit_v and_o accommodate_v they_o for_o the_o state_n of_o glorious_a liberty_n and_o for_o glorious_a person_n what_o that_o goodness_n shall_v be_v it_o be_v safe_a to_o say_v we_o know_v not_o it_o will_v then_o appear_v when_o god_n shall_v effect_v their_o deliverance_n 3._o the_o glory_n with_o which_o god_n will_v clothe_v the_o whole_a creation_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o each_o creature_n nature_n 4._o no_o creature_n shall_v partake_v of_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v they_o capable_a of_o that_o glory_n whereof_o the_o godly_a be_v quest_n 4._o to_o what_o use_n shall_v the_o creature_n deck_v with_o glory_n serve_v this_o question_n be_v the_o stone_n of_o stumble_v at_o which_o many_o divine_n stumble_v and_o so_o fall_v into_o a_o flat_a denial_n of_o his_o glorious_a renovation_n of_o the_o creature_n resp_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v for_o such_o use_n as_o now_o they_o be_v this_o present_a world_n of_o creature_n be_v principal_o for_o these_o two_o end_n 1._o for_o the_o sustentation_n of_o these_o our_o body_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o this_o animal_n life_n we_o now_o live_v they_o be_v for_o food_n for_o raiment_n for_o physic_n for_o bodily_a delight_n 2._o their_o other_o use_n and_o end_n be_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n may_v take_v their_o rise_n from_o the_o creature_n excellency_n to_o mount_v up_o into_o a_o holy_a contemplation_n of_o god_n the_o visible_a creature_n teach_v man_n some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n rom._n 1.20_o their_o excellency_n do_v make_v know_v to_o we_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n but_o the_o creature_n when_o thus_o deliver_v into_o a_o state_n of_o glory_n shall_v not_o be_v for_o these_o end_n for_o 1._o then_o our_o life_n shall_v not_o be_v animal_n and_o our_o body_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o hunger_n thirst_n cold_a heat_n and_o such_o like_a natural_a infirmity_n our_o body_n shall_v be_v spiritualise_v and_o shall_v no_o more_o need_v these_o thing_n to_o preserve_v they_o then_o the_o angel_n as_o in_o the_o resurrection_n we_o shall_v neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n so_o neither_o shall_v we_o eat_v drink_v or_o feel_v the_o pinch_a cold_a or_o faint_v with_o scorch_a heat_n therefore_o the_o creature_n shall_v not_o serve_v for_o this_o use_n 2._o again_o the_o creature_n shall_v no_o more_o teach_v man_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n because_o than_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n without_o look_v through_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o creature_n god_n will_v then_o immediate_o communicate_v himself_o to_o we_o that_o
great_a glory_n when_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o with_o trumpet_n sound_v before_o he_o and_o see_v he_o with_o his_o glorious_a train_n with_o all_o his_o glorious_a angel_n as_o himself_o speak_v matth._n 16.27_o to_o see_v he_o sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n of_o majesty_n and_o the_o world_n round_o about_o he_o his_o friend_n the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n the_o goat_n his_o enemy_n on_o his_o left_a hand_n what_o a_o sight_n will_v this_o be_v especial_o if_o you_o have_v then_o so_o much_o interest_n in_o christ_n as_o to_o be_v place_v among_o the_o sheep_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n how_o will_v it_o affect_v you_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v always_o in_o your_o eye_n and_o never_o out_o of_o your_o sight_n if_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n be_v so_o strike_v with_o amazement_n when_o she_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o solomon_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o spirit_n in_o she_o 1_o king_n 10.5_o how_o will_v all_o the_o saint_n be_v fill_v with_o admiration_n when_o they_o shall_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n how_o do_v that_o astonish_a queen_n bless_v the_o attendant_n of_o solomon_n happy_a be_v thy_o man_n happy_a be_v these_o thy_o servant_n that_o stand_v continual_o before_o thou_o and_o hear_v thy_o wisdom_n alas_o what_o happiness_n be_v this_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n who_o stand_v continual_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o presence_n there_o be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n fullness_n of_o glory_n be_v it_o such_o a_o happiness_n to_o hear_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n what_o a_o transcendent_a happiness_n be_v it_o then_o to_o hear_v the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v great_a than_o solomon_n i_o conceive_v that_o the_o glory_n which_o three_o of_o christ_n disciple_n see_v upon_o the_o holy_a mount_n be_v but_o a_o glimpse_n of_o that_o fullness_n of_o glory_n wherewith_o he_o be_v now_o sill_v in_o heaven_n yet_o that_o little_a drop_n be_v so_o affect_v that_o peter_n cry_v out_o master_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o he_o be_v so_o ravish_v with_o extraordinary_a joy_n conceive_v at_o the_o heavenly_a vision_n that_o he_o even_o lose_v and_o forget_v himself_o and_o wist_v not_o what_o they_o say_v luke_n 9.33_o 34._o but_o be_v overjoy_v it_o appear_v his_o wish_n be_v inconsiderate_a and_o his_o counsel_n rash_a and_o unadvised_a let_v we_o build_v three_o tabernacle_n one_o for_o thou_o another_z for_o moses_n another_o for_o elias_n for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o he_o think_v earthly_a tabernacle_n fit_a habitation_n for_o heavenly_a body_n 2._o because_o he_o conceive_v not_o aright_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o vision_n viz._n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o let_v they_o to_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n what_o christ_n glory_n and_o their_o glory_n shall_v be_v which_o he_o will_v have_v have_v continue_v when_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v intermit_v for_o have_v christ_n continue_v in_o this_o estate_n he_o can_v not_o have_v suffer_v and_o so_o our_o salvation_n have_v not_o be_v accomplish_v but_o while_o peter_n be_v thus_o speak_v behold_v a_o bright_a cloud_n overshadow_a they_o and_o they_o fear_v when_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o cloud_n have_v not_o this_o cloud_n somewhat_o abate_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o apparition_n it_o have_v not_o be_v possible_a for_o these_o disciple_n in_o the_o state_n of_o mortality_n to_o have_v behold_v the_o countenance_n of_o their_o master_n now_o if_o christ_n in_o his_o transfiguration_n while_o he_o be_v on_o mount_n tabor_n be_v so_o delightful_a to_o behold_v when_o his_o humanity_n appear_v in_o a_o glorious_a form_n only_o but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n how_o pleasant_a will_v the_o sight_n of_o he_o be_v to_o the_o godly_a when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o by_o perfect_a vision_n and_o enjoy_v he_o by_o full_a fruition_n with_o abundant_a satisfaction_n shall_v the_o saint_n behold_v the_o face_n of_o christ_n in_o fullness_n of_o glory_n oh_o how_o will_v it_o ravish_v their_o heart_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o who_o give_v himself_o for_o they_o who_o love_v they_o and_o wash_v their_o sin_n in_o his_o blood_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v content_a to_o be_v perfect_v by_o suffering_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v they_o into_o glory_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o who_o die_v for_o they_o and_z rise_v again_o for_o their_o justification_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n take_v possession_n thereof_o and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o they_o and_o come_v again_o and_o take_v they_o to_o himself_o they_o shall_v then_o be_v even_o transport_v with_o joy_n to_o behold_v their_o saviour_n who_o they_o love_v so_o dear_o all_o their_o life_n but_o never_o have_v the_o happiness_n to_o see_v before_o for_o who_o appearance_n they_o long_v thirst_v sigh_v pray_v come_v lord_n jesus_n oh_o how_o will_v their_o heart_n melt_v towards_o he_o think_v you_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o oh_o this_o be_v he_o that_o die_v for_o i_o that_o shed_v his_o precious_a blood_n for_o i_o they_o will_v then_o look_v through_o he_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o then_o to_o think_v they_o shall_v always_o see_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o and_o never_o be_v divide_v from_o he_o any_o more_o they_o will_v then_o be_v even_o ravish_v into_o a_o ecstasy_n of_o joy_n their_o sight_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v laeta_fw-la familiaris_fw-la &_o perpetua_fw-la joyful_a familiar_a and_o perpetual_a which_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o the_o beatitude_n peculiar_a to_o the_o saint_n from_o which_o the_o wicked_a be_v exclude_v oh_o happy_a yea_o thrice_o happy_a be_v those_o eye_n which_o shall_v see_v the_o face_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o shall_v love_v perfect_o and_o of_o who_o they_o be_v infinite_o and_o eternal_o belove_v what_o a_o ravish_a sight_n will_v it_o be_v to_o behold_v that_o body_n which_o be_v so_o foul_o disfigure_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sake_n it_o shall_v be_v undoubted_o as_o st._n bernard_n say_v a_o thing_n full_a of_o all_o sweetness_n and_o delight_n when_o man_n shall_v there_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o man_n the_o creator_n of_o man_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n create_v we_o be_v wont_v to_o esteem_v it_o a_o singular_a great_a honour_n to_o our_o family_n to_o see_v one_o of_o our_o kindred_n advance_v to_o a_o crown_n or_o dignify_v with_o some_o princely_a honour_n but_o how_o far_o great_a honour_n shall_v this_o be_v to_o we_o to_o see_v that_o lord_n who_o be_v our_o god_n our_o near_a kinsman_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o make_v king_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o if_o the_o member_n do_v account_v that_o a_o honour_n to_o they_o which_o be_v do_v to_o their_o head_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o strict_a union_n that_o be_v between_o the_o head_n and_o its_o member_n what_o else_o shall_v it_o be_v but_o that_o every_o faithful_a christian_a shall_v account_v the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n their_o head_n as_o their_o peculiar_a glory_n how_o shall_v the_o consideration_n hereof_o make_v every_o one_o of_o we_o cry_v out_o o_o my_o dear_a saviour_n and_o bless_a redeemer_n when_o shall_v this_o joyful_a day_n come_v oh_o when_o shall_v i_o appear_v before_o thy_o face_n and_o be_v ravish_v by_o behold_v thy_o excellent_a beauty_n when_o shall_v i_o see_v that_o countenance_n of_o thou_o which_o the_o angel_n be_v desirous_a to_o behold_v how_o true_a concern_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n be_v that_o which_o solomon_n say_v the_o eye_n be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o see_v eccles_n 1.8_o and_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o in_o heaven_n the_o eye_n shall_v be_v full_o satisfy_v but_o not_o satiate_v at_o all_o with_o see_v they_o shall_v see_v such_o glory_n that_o they_o shall_v desire_v no_o great_a if_o philip_n on_o earth_n say_v to_o christ_n show_v we_o the_o father_n and_o it_o shall_v suffice_v how_o much_o more_o when_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o king_n of_o king_n in_o his_o glory_n shall_v glorify_a saint_n say_v we_o have_v enough_o satis_fw-la satis_fw-la domine_fw-la satis_fw-la they_o shall_v desire_v no_o great_a glory_n yet_o never_o be_v weary_a of_o see_v sect_n viii_o 3._o hereunto_o i_o may_v also_o add_v that_o bless_a and_o glorious_a spectacle_n of_o the_o general_a assembly_n and_o church_n of_o the_o first-born_a who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n those_o many_o thousand_o of_o patriarch_n and_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a world_n prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n apostle_n of_o the_o new_a martyr_n faithful_a preacher_n and_o sincere_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n enoch_n noah_n abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n moses_n samuel_n david_n daniel_n joh_n peter_n paul_n the_o great_a doctor_n of_o
grace_n we_o be_v shameful_o foil_v love_n and_o affection_n to_o our_o own_o vain_a opinion_n be_v a_o great_a impediment_n to_o sound_a judgement_n it_o breed_v prejudice_n against_o the_o truth_n make_v man_n resolute_a in_o defend_v their_o opinion_n if_o by_o any_o way_n of_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o purpose_n it_o be_v possible_a but_o in_o heaven_n the_o soundness_n of_o the_o saint_n judgement_n shall_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o acuteness_n of_o their_o apprehension_n they_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o accompany_v with_o doubt_n and_o darkness_n as_o they_o learn_v without_o labour_n so_o they_o shall_v not_o fear_v forgetfulness_n draw_v light_n and_o wisdom_n from_o the_o very_a fountain_n they_o shall_v know_v all_o thing_n in_o their_o principle_n their_o soul_n shall_v then_o be_v penetrate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o their_o judgement_n clarify_v with_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n the_o saint_n shall_v then_o be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o view_v the_o superficies_n or_o surface_n of_o thing_n but_o also_o to_o dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o they_o to_o comprehend_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n the_o height_n and_o depth_n of_o they_o they_o shall_v then_o see_v that_o god_n be_v ever_o like_o himself_o and_o that_o all_o thing_n in_o he_o do_v most_o exact_o consent_v and_o agree_v together_o durand_n sicut_fw-la terra_fw-la respectu_fw-la coeli_fw-la est_fw-la insensibilis_fw-la quantitatis_fw-la sic_fw-la honitas_fw-la aliarum_fw-la scientiarum_fw-la respectu_fw-la scipturarum_fw-la durand_n durandus_fw-la say_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o humane_a science_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o heaven_n for_o bigness_n the_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o small_a insensible_a point_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o heaven_n i_o be_o sure_a the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o we_o have_v from_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o creature_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o the_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n have_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o it_o all_o solomon_n wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v nothing_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n give_v to_o solomon_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n exceed_v much_o 1_o reg._n 4.29_o and_o largeness_n of_o heart_n even_o as_o the_o sand_n on_o the_o seashore_n and_o this_o be_v to_o admiration_n in_o this_o state_n of_o mortality_n but_o i_o believe_v that_o he_o that_o be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n shall_v far_o surpass_v solomon_n in_o understanding_n and_o judgement_n if_o john_n baptist_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n testimony_n be_v great_a than_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n because_o he_o see_v christ_n already_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n whereas_o they_o only_o foresee_v christ_n to_o come_v and_o yet_o the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v great_a in_o this_o respect_n than_o john_n baptist_n because_o they_o see_v into_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o as_o already_o come_v but_o as_o have_v actual_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n die_v overcome_v death_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a ascend_v into_o heaven_n give_v forth_o his_o spirit_n and_o spread_v his_o gospel_n over_o the_o world_n how_o far_o then_o shall_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o heaven_n see_v christ_n face_n to_o face_n excel_v the_o knowledge_n which_o all_o the_o prophet_n solomon_n john_n baptist_n and_o all_o believer_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v here_o upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o as_o the_o perfection_n of_o these_o faculty_n so_o the_o excellency_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o object_n which_o they_o shall_v thus_o clear_o apprehend_v and_o perfect_o know_v shall_v wonderful_o advance_v the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o saint_n chap._n xx._n sect_n i._o a_o description_n of_o what_o thing_n shall_v be_v see_v in_o god_n by_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n he_o that_o see_v a_o wise_a and_o mighty_a man_n although_o he_o see_v his_o outside_n yet_o his_o inside_n he_o see_v not_o viz._n the_o beauty_n and_o perfection_n of_o his_o mind_n but_o in_o heaven_n the_o saint_n shall_v see_v the_o divine_a beauty_n and_o excellency_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o inner_a man_n they_o shall_v see_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n they_o shall_v behold_v he_o not_o by_o a_o reflex_n as_o a_o man_n may_v see_v the_o image_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o a_o looking-glass_n but_o they_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v look_v upon_o he_o in_o a_o direct_a line_n 1._o they_o shall_v with_o admiration_n behold_v he_o as_o the_o first_o eternal_a be_v as_o the_o ancient_n of_o day_n comprehend_v all_o the_o century_n of_o year_n all_o the_o age_n and_o generation_n all_o the_o hundred_o and_o thousand_o of_o year_n all_o the_o change_n and_o period_n of_o time_n all_o of_o they_o make_v up_o but_o a_o moment_n and_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n to_o his_o eternity_n 2._o they_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v glorious_a in_o himself_o in_o his_o be_v that_o he_o be_v infinite_o glorious_a in_o all_o his_o attribute_n that_o he_o be_v eternal_o glorious_a in_o all_o his_o work_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o god_n as_o he_o proclaim_v himself_o to_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n the_o lord_n god_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v know_v the_o immensity_n of_o his_o be_v the_o infiniteness_n of_o his_o greatness_n that_o he_o be_v infinite_a in_o grace_n infinite_a in_o mercy_n infinite_a in_o glory_n they_o shall_v then_o see_v the_o unlimitedness_n of_o his_o essence_n fill_v they_o with_o himself_o with_o his_o presence_n and_o fullness_n fill_v all_o thing_n and_o with_o his_o infinite_a be_v enclose_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v 3._o they_o shall_v clear_o see_v he_o as_o a_o unchangeable_a god_n who_o have_v wrought_v all_o the_o wonderful_a change_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o heaven_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sea_n yet_o that_o himself_o have_v remain_v still_o immutable_a they_o shall_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o first_o universal_a mover_n who_o set_v all_o thing_n in_o motion_n in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n move_v himself_o remain_v immovable_a 4._o they_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v convince_v of_o his_o almighty_a power_n but_o shall_v see_v it_o clear_o and_o manifest_o discern_v his_o infinite_a strength_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o read_v of_o the_o great_a strength_n of_o samson_n and_o to_o believe_v it_o as_o a_o certain_a truth_n it_o have_v be_v another_o thing_n and_o a_o matter_n of_o far_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o have_v see_v he_o smite_v the_o philistine_n hip_n and_o thigh_n with_o a_o great_a slaughter_n kill_v a_o thousand_o of_o god_n enemy_n with_o the_o jawbone_n of_o a_o ass_n carry_v away_o the_o gate_n and_o post_n of_o a_o city_n upon_o his_o shoulder_n pull_v down_o with_o his_o hand_n the_o house_n wherein_o thousand_o of_o the_o philistine_n be_v sit_v so_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o read_v and_o believe_v the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n but_o another_o thing_n and_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o soul_n to_o have_v a_o clear_a view_n of_o it_o to_o see_v god_n form_v heaven_n and_o earth_n of_o nothing_o and_o change_a time_n and_o season_n to_o see_v he_o raise_v some_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n and_o lift_v they_o out_o of_o the_o dunghill_n and_o set_v they_o with_o prince_n and_o throw_v down_o the_o mighty_a from_o their_o seat_n that_o be_v exalt_v to_o place_n of_o great_a eminency_n and_o dignity_n overturning_a nation_n and_o kingdom_n and_o work_v great_a wonder_n these_o thing_n though_o past_a it_o be_v conceive_v they_o shall_v be_v as_o clear_o see_v in_o god_n when_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o then_o in_o do_v with_o great_a delight_n also_o shall_v they_o see_v his_o almighty_a power_n that_o shall_v bring_v up_o all_o the_o potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n all_o man_n high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a young_a and_o old_a before_o his_o tribunal_n in_o translate_n all_o his_o child_n into_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o throw_v the_o wicked_a into_o everlasting_a burn_n they_o shall_v also_o see_v god_n exercise_v his_o power_n in_o dissolve_v the_o frame_n of_o this_o visible_a world_n roll_v the_o heaven_n together_o as_o a_o scroll_n and_o fold_v they_o up_o as_o a_o garment_n melt_v the_o element_n with_o fervent_a heat_n and_o burn_v up_o the_o earth_n with_o the_o work_n that_o be_v therein_o moreover_o they_o shall_v see_v what_o god_n shall_v do_v for_o
gracious_o merciful_a and_o that_o none_o have_v cause_n to_o complain_v of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o fundamental_a cause_n of_o this_o various_a administration_n with_o nation_n and_o person_n be_v the_o holy_a and_o sovereign_a will_n of_o god_n who_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v this_o be_v the_o depth_n without_o a_o bottom_n that_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o but_o in_o heaven_n the_o saint_n shall_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o mystery_n the_o bosom_n of_o god_n be_v open_v to_o their_o understanding_n what_o be_v the_o event_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o world_n or_o in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o effect_n or_o consequent_n of_o those_o decree_n which_o have_v be_v everlasting_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n now_o if_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v perfect_o see_v god_n than_o nothing_o of_o god_n shall_v be_v hide_v from_o they_o which_o may_v make_v up_o their_o complete_a happiness_n they_o shall_v then_o clear_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n and_o all_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o the_o prophecy_n all_o the_o figure_n type_n and_o symbolical_a shadow_n all_o the_o mystical_a sense_n all_o these_o thing_n they_o believe_v here_o either_o express_o or_o implicit_o but_o the_o reward_n of_o faith_n be_v vision_n and_o clear_a knowledge_n the_o same_o do_v st._n augustine_n insinuate_v say_v 21._o august_n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 21._o what_o shall_v we_o see_v in_o heaven_n but_o god_n and_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o now_o believe_v we_o see_v not_o chap._n xxi_o moreover_o the_o saint_n shall_v see_v and_o know_v that_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n their_o nature_n each_o of_o their_o person_n in_o particular_a as_o the_o angel_n know_v every_o elect_a person_n because_o it_o be_v their_o work_n to_o gather_v the_o elect_a from_o all_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o wicked_a matth._n 13.41_o so_o the_o glorify_a saint_n shall_v know_v the_o holy_a angel_n who_o the_o lord_n send_v forth_o to_o minister_v for_o they_o who_o the_o lord_n appoint_v for_o their_o guard_n while_o they_o be_v upon_o earth_n who_o encamp_v round_o about_o they_o while_o they_o be_v encompass_v with_o so_o many_o danger_n some_o divine_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o exceed_v without_o comparison_n all_o corporal_a and_o material_a thing_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o like_a as_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o heaven_n exceed_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o earth_n without_o any_o proportion_n even_o so_o do_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o glorious_a spirit_n exceed_v the_o multitude_n of_o all_o corporal_a and_o material_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n with_o the_o like_a advantage_n and_o proportion_n now_o what_o thing_n can_v be_v imagine_v more_o wonderful_a than_o this_o again_o if_o every_o one_o of_o the_o angel_n yea_o though_o it_o be_v the_o least_o angel_n among_o they_o all_o be_v more_o beautiful_a and_o goodly_a to_o behold_v then_o all_o this_o visible_a world_n what_o a_o glorious_a sight_n shall_v it_o be_v then_o to_o see_v such_o a_o number_n of_o beautiful_a angel_n to_o see_v the_o perfection_n and_o office_n that_o every_o one_o have_v in_o that_o high_a and_o glorious_a city_n there_o do_v the_o angel_n go_v as_o it_o be_v in_o embassage_n be_v exercise_v in_o their_o ministry_n there_o the_o principality_n and_o throne_n triumph_v there_o do_v the_o cherubim_n give_v light_a &_o the_o seraphim_n burn_v with_o fervent_a love_n all_o of_o that_o heavenly_a court_n be_v perpetual_o sing_v praise_n and_o hallelujah_n to_o god_n almighty_a and_o to_o the_o lamb_n that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n for_o ever_o oh_o what_o honour_n be_v this_o which_o god_n will_v do_v to_o his_o child_n hereafter_o when_o he_o shall_v exalt_v they_o to_o so_o high_a a_o dignity_n as_o to_o place_v they_o among_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o make_v they_o like_v unto_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n chap._n xxii_o sect_n i._o of_o the_o saint_n mutual_a knowledge_n of_o each_o other_o in_o heaven_n final_o the_o saint_n shall_v know_v each_o other_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n and_o people_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n and_o nation_n the_o saint_n shall_v behold_v numberless_a host_n and_o troop_n of_o glorify_a piece_n redeem_v saint_n in_o that_o high_a orb_n and_o region_n of_o glory_n there_o they_o shall_v behold_v the_o general_a assembly_n and_o church_n of_o the_o first-born_a who_o name_n be_v now_o write_v in_o heaven_n heb._n 12.23_o immediate_o illuminate_v study_v preach_v and_o praise_v christ_n for_o evermore_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n say_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 13.28_o it_o be_v propound_v as_o a_o doubt_n to_o martin_n luther_n 87._o chemnit_fw-la harmony_n evang_v cap._n 87._o a_o little_a before_o his_o deathbed_n whether_o glorify_a saint_n shall_v have_v mutual_a knowledge_n of_o each_o other_o he_o thus_o resolve_v his_o friend_n that_o as_o adam_n know_v his_o wife_n in_o paradise_n when_o she_o be_v first_o present_v to_o he_o and_o as_o st._n peter_n ravish_v with_o a_o heavenly_a vision_n at_o the_o transfiguration_n of_o christ_n matth._n 17.4_o take_v notice_n of_o moses_n and_o elias_n when_o as_o tertullian_n say_v he_o never_o see_v so_o much_o as_o any_o of_o their_o picture_n 4._o tertul._n contr_n martion_n lib._n 4._o the_o law_n prohibit_v such_o thing_n to_o the_o jew_n if_o in_o this_o short_a taste_n of_o glory_n he_o and_o the_o other_o two_o disciple_n with_o he_o have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o these_o glorify_a saint_n then_o doubtless_o when_o the_o saint_n shall_v enjoy_v fullness_n of_o glory_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o each_o other_o as_o we_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a because_o it_o desire_v to_o be_v so_o before_o it_o be_v inflame_v by_o any_o study_a notion_n and_o apprehension_n of_o eternity_n so_o with_o equal_a probability_n we_o may_v prefigure_v and_o delineate_v some_o part_n or_o shadow_n of_o our_o future_a happiness_n be_v guide_v by_o those_o innate_a and_o universal_a propension_n which_o incline_v every_o soul_n to_o desire_n and_o wish_v the_o same_o thing_n among_o those_o transcendent_a desire_n which_o issue_n from_o our_o nature_n this_o be_v one_o that_o those_o acquaintance_n which_o be_v virtuous_o begin_v on_o earth_n may_v be_v renew_v and_o perfect_v in_o heaven_n this_o desire_n be_v once_o of_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o former_a age_n have_v respect_n unto_o it_o for_o when_o they_o find_v it_o easy_a to_o overcome_v all_o other_o terror_n of_o death_n then_o that_o one_o of_o a_o everlasting_a absence_n from_o a_o friend_n they_o be_v careful_a to_o cheer_v a_o depart_a soul_n by_o assure_v it_o that_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o other_o world_n next_o to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n consist_v in_o the_o gain_n of_o new_a and_o the_o indissoluble_a recovery_n of_o old_a acquaintance_n what_o they_o make_v a_o part_n of_o their_o happiness_n we_o admit_v but_o as_o a_o appendix_n to_o we_o and_o as_o we_o think_v it_o not_o safe_a to_o join_v any_o creature_n unto_o god_n to_o make_v up_o the_o object_n of_o our_o happiness_n so_o we_o believe_v it_o will_v derogate_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o goodness_n if_o particular_a soul_n like_v so_o many_o divide_a channel_n shall_v have_v their_o own_o bank_n full_a but_o yet_o be_v debar_v from_o all_o commerce_n and_o mutual_a knowledge_n of_o each_o other_o blessedness_n our_o creed_n moreover_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o believe_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o our_o faith_n here_o it_o must_v be_v a_o object_n of_o our_o knowledge_n hereafter_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v some_o who_o sincere_o communicate_v with_o we_o in_o the_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n than_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o clear_o know_v who_o be_v our_o fellow-member_n in_o that_o communion_n and_o as_o faith_n itself_o shall_v be_v do_v away_o by_o evidence_n so_o shall_v that_o communion_n which_o be_v here_o by_o faith_n be_v hereafter_o perfect_v by_o that_o communion_n which_o shall_v be_v by_o vision_n those_o who_o have_v labour_v to_o find_v out_o the_o most_o intimate_a and_o peculiar_a property_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n do_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v make_v and_o fashion_v for_o society_n now_o as_o divine_n use_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o abolish_v but_o to_o perfect_v the_o law_n so_o may_v we_o pronounce_v of_o our_o blessedness_n in_o
when_o we_o forego_v they_o torment_v we_o and_o therefore_o better_a a_o great_a deal_n that_o we_o honourable_o contemn_v what_o we_o can_v but_o sorrowful_o lose_v blessedness_n be_v not_o to_o be_v attain_v on_o earth_n but_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o in_o heaven_n and_o this_o shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o the_o seek_v after_o a_o better_a life_n for_o that_o condition_n where_o we_o may_v be_v bless_v for_o ever_o the_o fruition_n of_o eternal_a glory_n be_v a_o future_a good_a there_o be_v difficulty_n to_o attain_v it_o it_o be_v no_o easy_a entrance_n into_o heaven_n god_n have_v make_v viam_fw-la lacteam_n in_fw-la coelis_fw-la not_o ad_fw-la coelum_fw-la god_n have_v make_v a_o milky_a way_n in_o heaven_n pave_v with_o star_n but_o not_o to_o heaven_n no_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v pave_v with_o sundry_a difficulty_n the_o way_n be_v narrow_a the_o gate_n be_v straight_o many_o seek_v and_o can_v find_v it_o yet_o although_o heaven_n be_v difficult_a to_o obtain_v there_o be_v a_o fair_a possibility_n for_o any_o man_n to_o win_v the_o crown_n of_o eternal_a glory_n there_o be_v never_o a_o saint_n that_o live_v and_o fight_v this_o christian_a warfare_n but_o when_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o course_n they_o receive_v palm_n the_o ensign_n of_o triumph_n and_o the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o christ_n the_o righteous_a judge_n have_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o laertius_n write_v of_o one_o that_o have_v be_v thirty_o and_o three_o year_n travel_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o nature_n of_o bee_n indeed_o bee_n be_v excellent_a creature_n and_o there_o be_v excellent_a use_n of_o the_o honey_n that_o they_o make_v but_o here_o be_v that_o which_o be_v sweet_a than_o honey_n and_o the_o honeycomb_n they_o that_o take_v pain_n for_o temporal_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n that_o they_o labour_v for_o it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o will_v satisfy_v now_o if_o it_o bring_v no_o satisfaction_n with_o it_o it_o can_v bring_v no_o blessedness_n with_o it_o but_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o blessedness_n be_v the_o bread_n that_o will_v satisfy_v this_o will_v be_v as_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n to_o our_o soul_n let_v we_o labour_v for_o this_o and_o our_o soul_n shall_v live_v now_o much_o honour_v in_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v write_v this_o tract_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o eternal_a blessedness_n which_o i_o humble_o dedicate_v to_o you_o partly_o that_o i_o may_v feed_v my_o own_o mind_n with_o this_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o partly_o that_o i_o may_v stir_v you_o up_o to_o the_o more_o serious_a consideration_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n there_o be_v nothing_o will_v make_v we_o more_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o kindle_v in_o we_o a_o earnest_a desire_n and_o longing_n after_o heaven_n than_o the_o frequent_a and_o diligent_a meditation_n on_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v will_v do_v oh_o do_v we_o frequent_o consider_v what_o pure_a and_o unmixed_a delight_n lie_v for_o ever_o on_o those_o everlasting_a hill_n and_o garden_n of_o spice_n that_o be_v always_o green_a and_o flourish_a how_o shall_v we_o rouse_v up_o ourselves_o and_o say_v what_o do_v we_o here_o oh_o why_o do_v we_o weary_v ourselves_o like_o the_o bird_n that_o toil_v to_o gather_v a_o few_o stick_v together_o to_o build_v a_o nest_n in_o the_o spring_n time_n which_o after_o a_o little_a time_n will_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o forsake_v remember_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o blessedness_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v here_o but_o in_o heaven_n in_o heaven_n where_o life_n eternal_a be_v there_o and_o there_o only_o true_a and_o perfect_a blessedness_n be_v as_o this_o ensue_a treatise_n will_v full_o demonstrate_v therefore_o let_v no_o temptation_n of_o satan_n at_o any_o time_n overcome_v you_o let_v not_o the_o love_n of_o any_o sin_n possess_v you_o let_v no_o evil_a example_n of_o the_o world_n seduce_v you_o let_v no_o evil_a advantage_n or_o pleasure_n steal_v away_o your_o heart_n from_o you_o go_v on_o still_o in_o make_v you_o friend_n of_o the_o unrighteous_a mammon_n and_o great_a profit_n shall_v thereby_o come_v unto_o you_o you_o may_v not_o think_v say_v chrysostome_n 16._o chrysost_n homil._n in_o luc._n 16._o that_o god_n make_v the_o rich_a for_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o poor_a but_o the_o poor_a for_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o rich_a when_o they_o make_v they_o friend_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n as_o if_o rich_a man_n shall_v one_o day_n find_v that_o the_o poor_a be_v their_o best_a friend_n for_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o everlasting_a habitation_n god_n seem_v to_o make_v his_o poor_a saint_n the_o porter_n of_o heaven_n god_n will_v then_o remember_v all_o the_o kindness_n you_o have_v show_v to_o any_o of_o his_o distress_a servant_n and_o abundant_o reward_v they_o yea_o he_o will_v recompense_v a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n give_v to_o a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o disciple_n with_o the_o whole_a fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n and_o two_o mite_n with_o the_o whole_a treasure_n in_o the_o temple_n there_o for_o gold_n you_o shall_v have_v glory_n for_o earthly_a manor_n heavenly_a mansion_n for_o silver_n that_o perish_v solace_n without_o end_n mirth_n without_o measure_n pleasure_n without_o pain_n there_o you_o shall_v be_v clothe_v in_o white_a which_o be_v the_o innocence_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v palm_n in_o your_o hand_n in_o token_n of_o victory_n and_o be_v crown_v with_o a_o diadem_n of_o pure_a gold_n which_o be_v immortality_n your_o happiness_n then_o will_v be_v for_o god_n to_o make_v you_o of_o his_o court_n though_o here_o you_o be_v not_o of_o his_o council_n final_o let_v i_o excite_v you_o to_o raise_v your_o thought_n and_o meditation_n beyond_o these_o sublunary_a thing_n and_o lift_v they_o up_o to_o those_o that_o be_v above_o settle_v your_o affection_n upon_o they_o exercise_v your_o study_n in_o they_o feed_v your_o desire_n and_o hope_n with_o they_o and_o ever_o think_v of_o one_o thing_n that_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o poor_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n there_o only_o be_v the_o centre_n and_o seat_n of_o blessedness_n for_o there_o as_o a_o ancient_n say_v quicquid_fw-la amabitur_fw-la aderit_fw-la medit_fw-la august_n medit_fw-la nec_fw-la desiderabitur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la aderit_fw-la whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v love_v shall_v be_v there_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o want_v that_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v there_o shall_v be_v all_o that_o good_a be_v even_o our_o great_a god_n who_o be_v our_o great_a good_a we_o shall_v have_v he_o with_o we_o there_o or_o rather_o he_o indeed_o shall_v have_v we_o there_o with_o he_o in_o who_o we_o shall_v be_v perfect_o bless_v and_o with_o who_o our_o blessedness_n shall_v be_v perpetual_o establish_v now_o i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v able_a to_o build_v you_o up_o and_o to_o give_v you_o a_o inheritance_n among_o all_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v the_o lord_n deliver_v you_o from_o every_o evil_a work_n and_o preserve_v you_o unto_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n so_o pray_v your_o affectionate_a servant_n in_o the_o gospel_n william_n gearing_n the_o content_n of_o this_o treatise_n chap._n 1._o the_o text_n romans_z 8.18_o explain_v chap._n 2._o many_o note_n of_o instruction_n raise_v chap._n 3._o sect._n 1_o a_o general_a description_n of_o glory_n and_o a_o particular_a description_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n sect._n 2._o show_v that_o god_n will_v raise_v his_o child_n to_o a_o high_a pitch_n of_o glory_n than_o adam_n be_v in_o paradise_n and_o how_o they_o shall_v ●e_v like_a to_o christ_n in_o glory_n chap._n 4._o set_v down_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n will_v glorify_v his_o child_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o chap._n 5._o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o saint_n glory_n chap._n 6._o show_v that_o the_o perfect_a glory_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v invisible_a for_o the_o present_a five_o reason_n thereof_o chap._n 7._o show_v that_o this_o glory_n in_o due_a time_n shall_v be_v reveal_v viz._n when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n divers_a reason_n thereof_o chap._n 8._o a_o threefold_a use_n to_o be_v make_v of_o it_o chap._n 9_o show_n that_o the_o creature_n themselves_o do_v earnest_o and_o continual_o expect_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glorious_a state_n of_o the_o godly_a wherein_o many_o weighty_a point_n be_v discuss_v and_o many_o doubt_n resolve_v chap._n 10._o show_n that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n or_o equality_n between_o a_o believer_n present_a suffering_n and_o his_o future_a glory_n chap._n
blot_v out_o his_o grace_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v expect_v it_o from_o his_o mercy_n god_n be_v unchangeable_a in_o his_o decree_n the_o design_n he_o have_v lay_v touch_v the_o save_n of_o his_o people_n from_o all_o eternity_n be_v not_o change_v in_o time_n nor_o can_v all_o the_o power_n on_o earth_n hinder_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o will_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o shall_v be_v predestinate_a and_o not_o save_v say_v peter_n lombard_n 40._o lomb._n send_v lib_fw-la 1._o dissin_n 40._o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v that_o he_o know_v all_o his_o sheep_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n john_n 10.27_o 28._o 2._o god_n have_v call_v they_o unto_o glory_n who_o he_o have_v predestinate_v they_o have_v he_o call_v who_o he_o have_v call_v they_o have_v he_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o have_v justify_v they_o also_o have_v he_o glorify_v rom._n 8.30_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o of_o the_o time_n past_a as_o if_o it_o be_v already_o do_v partly_o because_o part_v of_o it_o be_v present_a as_o peace_n joy_n etc._n etc._n and_o partly_o because_o it_o be_v as_o sure_a as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o present_a possession_n we_o be_v call_v unto_o glory_n and_o virtue_n we_o be_v call_v to_o the_o obtain_v the_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o gospel_n 2_o thes_n 2.14_o and_o s._n paul_n exhort_v the_o thessalonian_o to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o god_n who_o have_v call_v they_o to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n 1_o thes_n 2.12_o god_n have_v call_v the_o saint_n out_o of_o this_o world_n they_o be_v no_o soon_o admit_v into_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o learn_v that_o the_o earth_n be_v their_o banishment_n and_o heaven_n their_o country_n the_o end_n why_o god_n call_v his_o people_n out_o of_o the_o world_n be_v that_o they_o may_v not_o seek_v for_o happiness_n upon_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o may_v make_v no_o account_n of_o what_o the_o wicked_a do_v possess_v and_o thereby_o see_v that_o riches_n and_o honour_n be_v not_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o righteous_a because_o god_n bestow_v they_o chief_o upon_o his_o enemy_n he_o leave_v the_o fair_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o those_o that_o persecute_v he_o to_o teach_v his_o child_n that_o heaven_n be_v their_o patrimony_n and_o inheritance_n 3._o god_n have_v prepare_v heaven_n for_o they_o christ_n at_o the_o last_o day_n will_v say_v to_o the_o sheep_n who_o he_o will_v place_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n receive_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 25.34_o when_o christ_n be_v leave_v the_o world_n he_o comfort_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o disconsolate_a disciple_n thus_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v you_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o john_n 14.2_o the_o glory_n must_v be_v incomparable_a which_o god_n have_v treasure_v up_o and_o be_v prepare_v from_o eternity_n neither_o do_v god_n only_o prepare_v heaven_n for_o his_o saint_n but_o he_o also_o prepare_v they_o for_o heaven_n he_o make_v they_o meet_v partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o light_n col._n 1.12_o for_o as_o wicked_a man_n be_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n sit_v for_o destruction_n so_o the_o saint_n be_v vessel_n of_o glory_n prepare_v unto_o glory_n rom._n 9.22_o 23._o the_o saint_n do_v not_o present_o pass_v from_o a_o corrupt_a to_o a_o glorious_a estate_n but_o there_o be_v a_o fit_v and_o a_o holy_a preparation_n come_v between_o if_o a_o man_n will_v wear_v a_o garment_n he_o fit_v it_o before_o he_o wear_v it_o so_o god_n will_v have_v his_o people_n cast_v into_o a_o new_a mould_n that_o he_o may_v fit_v they_o for_o heaven_n before_o he_o put_v they_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o 4._o god_n have_v promise_v to_o bestow_v heaven_n upon_o his_o people_n he_o will_v give_v grace_n and_o glory_n psal_n 84.11_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n have_v he_o promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o jam._n 1.12_o heaven_n come_v to_o we_o by_o deed_n by_o good_a assurance_n there_o be_v no_o better_a deed_n then_o that_o which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n and_o seal_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o judicious_a divine_a well_o note_v 1.12_o dr._n holdsworth_n sermoon_n jam._n 1.12_o therefore_o though_o we_o can_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o thing_n yet_o we_o may_v see_v it_o in_o the_o promise_n psal_n 50.23_o to_o he_o that_o order_v his_o conversation_n aright_o will_v i_o show_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n he_o have_v choose_v the_o poor_a of_o the_o world_n rich_a in_o faith_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o jam._n 2.5_o heaven_n be_v a_o kingdom_n engage_v to_o the_o saint_n by_o promise_n and_o they_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o promise_a kingdom_n and_o to_o judge_v he_o faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v st._n augustin_n august_n debtor_n factus_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la aliquid_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la accipiendo_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la ei_fw-la placu●t_fw-la promittendo_fw-la august_n say_v god_n be_v become_v a_o debtor_n not_o by_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o we_o but_o by_o promise_v all_o thing_n to_o we_o what_o it_o please_v he_o hereupon_o say_v he_o we_o say_v not_o to_o god_n repay_v that_o which_o thou_o receive_v but_o pay_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v promise_v let_v we_o hold_v he_o therefore_o a_o most_o faithful_a debtor_n because_o we_o have_v he_o a_o most_o merciful_a promiser_n the_o promise_n be_v make_v in_o mercy_n the_o performance_n thereof_o depend_v upon_o the_o fidelity_n of_o the_o promiser_n yea_o we_o have_v not_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o god_n only_o but_o also_o his_o oath_n heb._n 17.18_o god_n will_v more_o abundant_o to_o show_v unto_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n the_o immutability_n of_o his_o counsel_n confirm_v it_o with_o a_o oath_n that_o by_o two_o immutable_a thing_n in_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v we_o may_v have_v a_o strong_a consolation_n who_o have_v flee_v for_o refuge_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o the_o hope_n set_v before_o we_o now_o he_o be_v jehovah_n and_o will_v give_v existence_n to_o all_o his_o promise_n and_o the_o make_v good_a his_o promise_n to_o his_o child_n will_v tend_v to_o the_o great_a manifestation_n of_o god_n glory_n sect_n ii_o divers_a reason_n also_o may_v be_v give_v why_o the_o lord_n will_v glorify_v his_o people_n in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o 1._o glory_n be_v the_o great_a design_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v unto_o they_o st._n paul_n set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o saint_n from_o other_o man_n rom._n 2.7_o and_o say_v to_o they_o who_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well-doing_n seek_v for_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o immortality_n eternal_a life_n i._n e._n to_o they_o shall_v be_v eternal_a life_n this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n that_o the_o saint_n aim_v at_o some_o of_o they_o do_v differ_v in_o some_o opinion_n but_o in_o this_o they_o all_o agree_v viz._n in_o aim_v at_o everlasting_a glory_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n therefore_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o miss_v of_o the_o main_a end_n and_o aim_v of_o their_o soul_n the_o spouse_n cry_v come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o their_o affection_n be_v set_v on_o thing_n above_o their_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n their_o treasure_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o heaven_n have_v their_o heart_n they_o seldom_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o they_o sigh_v after_o it_o and_o be_v afflict_v at_o their_o banishment_n grief_n make_v the_o heavenborn_a soul_n cry_v woe_n be_v i_o because_o my_o habitation_n be_v prolong_v 2._o glory_n be_v the_o expectation_n of_o the_o saint_n phil._n 3.20_o 21._o and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o rejoice_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n rom._n 5.2_o save_v hope_n be_v a_o siducial_a and_o undoubted_a expectation_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o happiness_n promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n and_o purchase_v by_o christ_n for_o we_o or_o else_o a_o patient_a wait_a for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v this_o be_v the_o hope_n that_o be_v mean_v rom._n 8.23_o 24._o there_o wait_v hope_v and_o expectation_n be_v the_o same_o wait_v for_o the_o adoption_n i._n e._n for_o the_o inheritance_n of_o glory_n to_o which_o by_o our_o adoption_n we_o
be_v as_o assistant_n of_o christ_n they_o shall_v assist_v as_o so_o many_o justice_n with_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o lord-chief-justice_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 2._o approbando_fw-la they_o shall_v approve_v and_o applaud_v his_o judgement_n they_o shall_v sit_v on_o throne_n of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o shall_v as_o god_n assessor_n give_v their_o voice_n and_o consent_n unto_o his_o just_a judgement_n against_o the_o wicked_a 3._o testificative_a they_o shall_v bring_v in_o evidence_n against_o the_o wicked_a so_o that_o all_o their_o mouth_n shall_v be_v stop_v the_o godly_a shall_v then_o be_v hear_v to_o speak_v and_o shall_v say_v to_o christ_n lord_n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o hate_v i_o scoff_v at_o i_o persecute_v and_o oppress_v i_o 2._o it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o the_o saint_n glory_n that_o they_o shall_v appear_v glorious_a in_o the_o open_a sight_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o saint_n shall_v see_v the_o damnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v see_v the_o glorious_a salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o their_o happiness_n their_o appear_v with_o christ_n in_o glory_n will_v make_v much_o for_o their_o glory_n quia_fw-la unumquodque_fw-la ex_fw-la comparatione_fw-la contrarii_fw-la magis_fw-la cognoscitur_fw-la because_o every_o thing_n be_v more_o know_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o the_o misery_n of_o war_n show_v we_o the_o happiness_n of_o peace_n the_o blackness_n of_o darkness_n commend_v the_o comfort_n of_o light_n so_o the_o misery_n of_o hell_n will_v make_v heaven_n the_o more_o glorious_a angel_n shall_v then_o admire_v at_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n he_o that_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n he_o will_v i_o confess_v before_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v glorify_v he_o before_o they_o luk._n 12.8_o say_v our_o saviour_n moreover_o the_o godly_a themselves_o shall_v mutual_o admire_v one_o another_o glory_n and_o admire_v christ_n in_o one_o another_o peter_n shall_v admire_v christ_n in_o the_o glory_n confer_v on_o paul_n and_o paul_n shall_v admire_v christ_n in_o the_o glory_n confer_v on_o peter_n they_o shall_v mutual_o rejoice_v in_o each_o other_o glory_n as_o here_o on_o earth_n they_o do_v mourn_v and_o grieve_v for_o one_o another_o in_o affliction_n in_o heaven_n they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o one_o another_o glory_n mat._n 8.11_o many_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o west_n and_o shall_v sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n sit_v at_o table_n show_v mutual_a delight_n in_o one_o another_o society_n christ_n will_v have_v his_o saint_n to_o behold_v the_o damnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o so_o they_o may_v admire_v the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o glorify_v his_o name_n that_o he_o shall_v deliver_v they_o from_o so_o great_a damnation_n luk._n 13.28_o and_o god_n will_v have_v the_o wicked_a to_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o so_o the_o wicked_a may_v in_o vain_a miserable_o torment_v themselves_o with_o envy_n at_o the_o surpass_a glory_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o they_o may_v also_o curse_v and_o torment_v themselves_o with_o inward_a grief_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v such_o fool_n as_o to_o lose_v such_o glory_n as_o the_o saint_n do_v enjoy_v then_o will_v they_o cry_v out_o oh_o we_o may_v have_v have_v those_o crown_n as_o well_o as_o they_o but_o now_o we_o must_v have_v the_o vial_n of_o wrath_n pour_v upon_o our_o head_n instead_o of_o have_v crown_n of_o glory_n set_v upon_o they_o we_o must_v now_o keep_v company_n with_o devil_n and_o infernal_a fiend_n in_o hell_n when_o we_o may_v have_v enjoy_v communion_n with_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o heaven_n chap._n viii_o 1._o be_v there_o unspeakable_a glory_n to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o saint_n hereafter_o then_o be_v not_o trouble_v at_o your_o present_a state_n whatever_o it_o be_v o_o you_o righteous_a let_v not_o your_o present_a mean_n obscure_a base_a condition_n in_o the_o world_n trouble_v your_o heart_n but_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n because_o of_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v be_v not_o trouble_v at_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v not_o terrify_v with_o the_o rage_n and_o cruelty_n of_o ungodly_a man_n at_o any_o time_n fear_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v your_o father_n will_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n bid_v affliction_n welcome_a for_o glories-sake_n bid_v reproach_n welcome_a for_o glories-sake_n let_v this_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n in_o all_o abasement_n and_o pressure_n yet_o i_o shall_v be_v glorify_v the_o world_n be_v please_v to_o reveal_v their_o malice_n in_o i_o but_o my_o god_n will_v reveal_v glory_n in_o i_o the_o world_n reveal_v their_o hatred_n against_o i_o but_o my_o god_n will_v reveal_v his_o love_n in_o i_o how_o despicable_a soever_o i_o be_o at_o this_o present_a yet_o i_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n you_o know_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v hide_v for_o thirty_o three_o year_n though_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n yet_o how_o despicable_a and_o contemptible_a be_v he_o all_o man_n scorn_v he_o reject_v he_o mock_v he_o persecute_v he_o but_o now_o he_o be_v in_o glory_n and_o will_v one_o day_n appear_v in_o glory_n to_o the_o world_n put_v case_n thou_o shall_v pass_v as_o many_o year_n in_o reproach_n and_o affliction_n yet_o thou_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n together_o with_o christ_n and_o thou_o do_v at_o present_a but_o drink_n of_o the_o same_o cup_n the_o lord_n of_o glory_n drink_v of_o before_o thou_o you_o that_o be_v afflict_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n what_o cause_n have_v you_o to_o count_v it_o all_o joy_n for_o if_o any_o have_v more_o abundant_o revelation_n of_o glory_n in_o they_o undoubted_o they_o have_v who_o have_v abound_v in_o suffering_n for_o christ_n this_o shall_v work_v in_o we_o a_o bless_a contempt_n of_o all_o the_o torment_n and_o cruelty_n that_o hell_n or_o earth_n can_v invent_v or_o execute_v a_o few_o hour_n in_o heaven_n will_v make_v amends_o for_o all_o the_o torture_n of_o this_o life_n be_v every_o torture_n a_o hell_n to_o we_o oh_o the_o perfection_n beauty_n glory_n and_o transcendent_a excellency_n of_o those_o joy_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o that_o day_n 2._o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o this_o glory_n may_v fortify_v our_o spirit_n against_o all_o fear_n and_o danger_n though_o the_o thing_n fear_v be_v not_o present_a yet_o fear_n be_v many_o time_n present_a with_o we_o there_o be_v enough_o in_o this_o consideration_n to_o raise_v our_o heart_n above_o fear_n the_o hope_n of_o this_o revelation_n heighten_v a_o christian_n courage_n give_v he_o the_o almighty_a for_o his_o second_o and_o make_v he_o triumph_n over_o all_o his_o fear_n and_o overcome_v all_o difficulty_n this_o have_v so_o fortify_v many_o saint_n and_o martyr_n that_o they_o have_v even_o laugh_v at_o tyrant_n and_o devil_n the_o great_a cruelty_n be_v not_o able_a to_o ravish_v from_o they_o what_o they_o love_v the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a glory_n will_v strengthen_v the_o heart_n against_o the_o worst_a of_o fear_n and_o danger_n which_o the_o worst_a of_o time_n and_o man_n can_v threaten_v be_v this_o hope_n well_o keep_v up_o it_o will_v carry_v a_o believer_n through_o a_o whole_a sea_n of_o trouble_n and_o the_o rough_a the_o sea_n prove_v the_o near_a will_v the_o soul_n be_v carry_v to_o the_o haven_n 3._o this_o likewise_o may_v strengthen_v the_o heart_n of_o god_n child_n against_o the_o present_a snare_n which_o sin_n satan_n or_o the_o world_n can_v lay_v before_o they_o since_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o revelation_n of_o glory_n in_o we_o what_o soul_n be_v there_o that_o be_v prevent_v and_o engage_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o may_v not_o see_v good_a ground_n to_o disdain_v all_o the_o offer_v that_o a_o sinful_a world_n can_v make_v he_o to_o ensnare_v his_o soul_n as_o abraham_n do_v not_o only_o reject_v the_o offer_n of_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n but_o do_v it_o with_o disdain_n gen._n 14.23_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v abraham_n portion_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o a_o wicked_a king_n for_o any_o thing_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o shoe-latchet_n he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o injurious_a to_o the_o possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n so_o when_o a_o child_n of_o god_n be_v tempt_v to_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a with_o present_a honour_n profit_n and_o preferment_n in_o the_o world_n this_o will_v make_v he_o with_o a_o holy_a disdain_n to_o refuse_v these_o proffer_n that_o the_o world_n and_o the_o god_n of_o the_o world_n make_v unto_o he_o because_o of_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o he_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o world_n
be_v very_o false_a and_o those_o imaginary_a contentment_n it_o allure_v we_o with_o give_v we_o nothing_o but_o real_a torment_n in_o the_o end_n chap._n ix_o show_v that_o the_o creature_n themselves_o do_v earnest_o and_o continual_o expect_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glorious_a state_n of_o the_o godly_a sect_n i._o moreover_o that_o there_o shall_v a_o time_n come_v when_o god_n shall_v make_v manifest_a and_o illustrious_a the_o glory_n of_o his_o child_n be_v evident_a from_o that_o instinct_n that_o god_n have_v put_v into_o the_o creature_n to_o wait_v for_o that_o time_n for_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o nineteeth_n verse_n of_o this_o eight_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o the_o earnest_a expectaction_n of_o the_o creature_n wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n st._n peter_n in_o his_o epist_n 2.3.16_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o paul_n epistle_n which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o mystery_n this_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v one_o and_o musculus_fw-la loc_n muscul_fw-la in_o loc_n conceive_v that_o st._n peter_n principal_o aim_v at_o this_o nineteenth_o verse_n and_o the_o three_o follow_a verse_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v a_o most_o mysterious_a mystery_n the_o fervent_a expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n wait_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o expectation_n expect_v so_o it_o be_v word_n for_o word_n it_o be_v a_o hebraism_n the_o hebrew_n when_o they_o will_v express_v the_o greatness_n or_o earnestness_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v it_o by_o double_v the_o word_n as_o thus_o in_o see_v i_o see_v in_o hear_v i_o hear_v in_o fly_v i_o fly_v so_o here_o the_o apostle_n to_o express_v the_o vehement_a expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n double_v the_o word_n the_o expectation_n expect_v the_o creature_n expect_v they_o expect_v the_o apostle_n use_v a_o elegant_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n signify_v the_o gesture_n of_o such_o who_o earnest_o expect_v something_o with_o the_o head_n stretch_v out_o or_o put_v forth_o the_o head_n look_v every_o way_n to_o behold_v the_o thing_n expect_v as_o sisera_n mother_n put_v her_o head_n forth_o the_o window_n look_v when_o sisera_n will_v come_v so_o the_o creature_n do_v as_o it_o be_v put_v forth_o the_o head_n look_v when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n cry_v as_o it_o be_v why_o be_v they_o so_o long_o ere_o they_o come_v and_o appear_v quest_n what_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o creature_n resp_n some_o understand_v by_o the_o creature_n the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o all_o their_o ornament_n the_o continens_fw-la and_o the_o contentum_fw-la but_o beza_n loc_n beza_n in_o loc_n understand_v thereby_o the_o world_n or_o universe_n consist_v of_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o be_v say_v here_o to_o expect_v not_o the_o creature_n in_o it_o and_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o will_v appear_v by_o show_v that_o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a creature_n man_n etc._n etc._n i._o by_o creature_n we_o can_v understand_v the_o angel_n that_o they_o do_v earnest_o expect_v this_o manifestation_n as_o origen_n loc_fw-la origen_n ad_fw-la loc_fw-la think_v 1._o because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o creature_n as_o be_v make_v subject_n to_o vanity_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n so_o the_o angel_n be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o privative_a vanity_n in_o any_o of_o the_o glorious_a angel_n they_o be_v perfect_o holy_a perfect_o immutable_o happy_a 2._o again_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n the_o angel_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o any_o such_o bondage_n every_o word_n in_o these_o verse_n make_v against_o this_o opinion_n origen_n think_v that_o because_o the_o angel_n be_v now_o minister_a spirit_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o because_o angel_n be_v set_v over_o kingdom_n and_o province_n and_o to_o manage_v war_n for_o and_o against_o kingdom_n hence_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o some_o vanity_n i_o answer_v though_o the_o angel_n do_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o vanity_n neither_o be_v it_o against_o their_o will_n thus_o to_o minister_v for_o see_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v attend_v on_o his_o people_n they_o do_v it_o with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n their_o great_a delight_n be_v to_o please_v god_n their_o presidency_n over_o kingdom_n and_o war_n be_v to_o restrain_v and_o direct_v they_o according_a to_o god_n command_n without_o any_o vanity_n or_o corruption_n in_o they_o it_o be_v part_n of_o man_n vanity_n and_o misery_n to_o be_v employ_v in_o war_n it_o be_v a_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n to_o he_o but_o not_o to_o angel_n who_o be_v both_o spectator_n and_o actor_n without_o corruption_n 3._o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o angel_n do_v earnest_o desire_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o they_o do_v not_o groan_v together_o with_o we_o and_o be_v not_o in_o pain_n together_o with_o we_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o other_o creature_n not_o of_o angel_n sect_n ii_o ii_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o new_a creature_n in_o man_n the_o image_n of_o god_n renew_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o for_o although_o grace_n begin_v tend_v to_o a_o glorious_a perfection_n and_o it_o desire_v its_o own_o perfection_n yet_o 1._o it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v subject_v to_o vanity_n to_o corruption_n 2._o the_o apostle_n oppose_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o new_a creature_n or_o grace_n in_o we_o to_o this_o creature_n which_o wait_v expect_v and_o groan_v when_o he_o say_v not_o only_o they_o that_o be_v the_o creature_n but_o we_o also_o who_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3._o because_o in_o scripture_n the_o word_n creature_n be_v never_o single_o add_v to_o grace_n but_o ever_o with_o a_o addition_n the_o new_a creature_n iii_o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o the_o socinian_o understand_v by_o creature_n the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o by_o they_o who_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n and_o make_v this_o sense_n for_o the_o godly_a or_o church_n of_o the_o godly_a wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o the_o godly_a but_o we_o also_o the_o apostle_n who_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n how_o absurd_a this_o sense_n be_v these_o argument_n will_v evince_v we_o 1._o because_o the_o creature_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o by_o creature_n be_v mean_v the_o godly_a than_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o sense_n the_o godly_a do_v wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o godly_a the_o son_n of_o god_n wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 2._o this_o sense_n utter_o subvert_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o prove_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v manifest_v from_o the_o creature_n expectation_n therefore_o some_o other_o creature_n must_v be_v understand_v 3._o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o afterward_o the_o godly_a do_v groan_n wait_v and_o hope_v for_o this_o manifestation_n for_o say_v he_o not_o only_o they_o but_o we_o also_o object_n they_o object_n by_o we_o in_o this_o place_n be_v mean_v the_o apostle_n sol._n it_o can_v be_v so_o because_o whatsoever_o be_v here_o say_v pertain_v to_o all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 1._o because_o all_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n verse_n 23._o 2._o because_o all_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v save_v by_o hope_n verse_n 24._o 3._o because_o all_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n with_o patience_n wait_v for_o it_o verse_n 25._o 4._o because_o all_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o spirit_n to_o help_v their_o infirmity_n verse_n 26._o it_o can_v therefore_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o apostle_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o godly_a but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v promiscuous_o of_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o godly_a sect_n iii_o iv_o by_o creature_n can_v be_v understand_v mankind_n as_o augustine_n and_o cajetan_n think_v who_o from_o mark_n 16._o go_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n say_v by_o creature_n must_v necessary_o there_o be_v understand_v mankind_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o man_n and_o think_v that_o in_o this_o place_n also_o man_n be_v mean_v and_o so_o make_v the_o sense_n thus_o for_o the_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o every_o man_n wait_v etc._n etc._n
now_o for_o answer_v to_o this_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o this_o word_n creature_n man_n be_v include_v but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o man_n yea_o not_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o man_n but_o of_o all_o the_o creature_n make_v for_o man_n use_n 2._o because_o if_o by_o creature_n man_n be_v understand_v then_o either_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o godly_a man_n or_o of_o wicked_a man_n or_o of_o man_n in_o general_n 1._o it_o can_v be_v understand_v that_o by_o creature_n godly_a man_n be_v mean_v for_o the_o reason_n above_o mention_v the_o creature_n and_o they_o be_v oppose_v not_o only_o they_o but_o we_o also_o 2._o it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o wicked_a man_n for_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o glory_n they_o desire_v not_o the_o day_n of_o this_o manifestation_n they_o wish_v in_o their_o heart_n it_o may_v never_o come_v they_o be_v in_o pain_n because_o of_o the_o thought_n of_o such_o a_o day_n they_o groan_v for_o fear_v of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o they_o may_v have_v their_o wish_n they_o will_v live_v for_o ever_o here_o in_o this_o world_n wallow_v in_o sin_n and_o sensual_a delight_n and_o take_v heaven_n glory_v who_o will_v for_o they_o 3._o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d una_fw-la suspirat_fw-la una_fw-la parturit_fw-la groan_v together_o and_o be_v in_o travel_n together_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o other_o creature_n beside_o man_n with_o who_o do_v they_o groan_v and_o travel_v together_o but_o with_o we_o man_n with_o we_o son_n of_o god_n sect_n iv_o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o by_o creature_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o world_n or_o universe_n quest_n but_o here_o a_o question_n will_v arise_v whether_o it_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n or_o together_o with_o they_o all_o creature_n within_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o earth_n whether_o the_o continens_fw-la and_o not_o the_o contentum_fw-la or_o both_o mundus_fw-la continens_fw-la &_o contentus_fw-la resp_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o determine_v some_o eminent_a divine_n do_v conceive_v that_o only_o mundus_fw-la continens_fw-la the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o earth_n do_v expect_v and_o groan_v for_o this_o manifestation_n and_o not_o the_o mundus_fw-la contentus_fw-la the_o creature_n within_o they_o thus_o beza_n loc_n beza_n in_o loc_n and_o so_o he_o interpret_v the_o word_n mundus_fw-la conditus_fw-la the_o world_n which_o be_v make_v expect_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o why_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v thus_o be_v restrain_v he_o give_v no_o reason_n other_o conceive_v that_o all_o the_o creature_n with_o they_o do_v expect_v the_o sun_n moon_n the_o star_n the_o element_n the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n tree_n and_o plant_n of_o the_o earth_n all_o creature_n which_o god_n at_o first_o make_v for_o the_o use_n and_o service_n of_o man_n and_o for_o the_o perfect_a ornament_n of_o the_o world_n for_o these_o reason_n reas_n 1._o because_o all_o creature_n which_o god_n make_v for_o man_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o world_n be_v for_o man_n sin_n subject_v to_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n under_o the_o same_o curse_n therefore_o all_o do_v expect_v and_o groan_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v under_o bondage_n do_v groan_n all_o creature_n be_v in_o bondage_n therefore_o they_o do_v groan_v 2._o because_o it_o be_v say_v verse_n 22._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d omnis_fw-la creatura_fw-la what_o these_o word_n signify_v cameron_n loc_n comeron_n in_o loc_n be_v positive_a profecto_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la totum_fw-la vniversum_fw-la significat_fw-la true_o it_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o whole_a universe_n why_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n without_o the_o ornament_n and_o creature_n in_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o whole_a creation_n to_o i_o it_o be_v irrational_a sect_n v._o quest_n 2._o we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o inquire_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n resp_n erasmus_n give_v this_o sense_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v public_a beza_n and_o calvin_n think_v it_o rather_o relate_v to_o their_o glory_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o desirable_a and_o bless_a the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v when_o they_o shall_v have_v put_v off_o corruption_n and_o put_v on_o incorruptible_a glory_n quest_n 3._o how_o the_o creature_n be_v here_o say_v to_o wait_v and_o expect_v some_o question_n because_o the_o word_n expectation_n and_o hope_n etc._n etc._n be_v here_o attribute_v to_o the_o creature_n there_o be_v some_o that_o think_v it_o can_v be_v mean_v inanimate_a creature_n void_a of_o sense_n and_o of_o animate_v creature_n who_o be_v void_a of_o reason_n resp_n 1._o in_o answer_n to_o this_o you_o be_v to_o know_v it_o be_v usual_a in_o scripture_n to_o attribute_v sense_n and_o reason_n both_o to_o senseless_a and_o sensitive_a creature_n by_o a_o figure_n call_v prosopopeia_fw-la feign_v they_o to_o be_v person_n as_o when_o god_n call_v to_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n hear_v o_o heaven_n and_o hearken_v o_o earth_n be_v astonish_v o_o you_o heaven_n all_o such_o phrase_n be_v but_o figurative_a speech_n so_o here_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o creature_n groan_v hope_v expect_v labour_v they_o be_v but_o figurative_a speech_n the_o holy_a ghost_n feign_v the_o whole_a creation_n as_o a_o person_n expect_v and_o groan_v for_o this_o glory_n he_o make_v whole_a nature_n to_o speak_v and_o groan_v when_o afford_v word_n unto_o her_o sorrow_n he_o make_v she_o wish_v our_o change_n and_o her_o deliverance_n 2._o the_o creature_n may_v be_v say_v earnest_o to_o expect_v this_o glorious_a manifestation_n in_o two_o respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o that_o natural_a instinct_n which_o be_v in_o every_o creature_n forcible_o incline_v they_o to_o their_o first_o create_v perfection_n of_o which_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n they_o be_v deprive_v which_o make_v the_o creature_n restless_a till_o it_o do_v attain_v to_o it_o this_o natural_a tendency_n to_o a_o better_a state_n be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v hope_n and_o expectation_n groan_v etc._n etc._n a_o learned_a man_n express_v it_o by_o this_o similitude_n as_o the_o needle_n in_o the_o mariner_n compass_n have_v a_o natural_a inclination_n to_o the_o north_n pole_n from_o which_o if_o it_o be_v remove_v it_o shake_v tremble_v and_o be_v in_o continual_a motion_n never_o rest_v till_o it_o come_v and_o be_v settle_v towards_o the_o north_n again_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o creature_n sin_n have_v put_v the_o whole_a creation_n out_o of_o order_n it_o can_v do_v that_o good_a for_o which_o god_n at_o first_o make_v the_o creature_n therefore_o they_o hope_v wait_v groan_n be_v in_o pain_n and_o travel_n till_o they_o be_v set_v in_o order_n again_o and_o attain_v to_o their_o primitive_a and_o more_o glorious_a state_n and_o condition_n 2._o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o wait_v for_o this_o glorious_a manifestation_n because_o the_o whole_a creation_n continue_v in_o that_o state_n and_o order_n wherein_o now_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o sin_n though_o subject_a to_o such_o infinite_a variation_n alteration_n corruptiou_n and_o decay_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o creature_n be_v make_v subject_a to_o vanity_n not_o willing_o he_o thereby_o insinuate_v that_o they_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sin_n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o the_o creature_n itself_o shall_v also_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n he_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v satisfy_v their_o desire_n and_o that_o he_o will_v restore_v to_o they_o what_o we_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o sin_n have_v unjust_o bereave_v they_o of_o for_o the_o corruption_n which_o they_o complain_v of_o be_v not_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o nature_n but_o that_o which_o they_o have_v attract_v from_o our_o sin_n musculus_fw-la loc._n muscul_fw-la in_o loc._n on_o this_o place_n say_v if_o we_o will_v but_o serious_o consider_v and_o observe_v under_o what_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n the_o whole_a creation_n labour_v we_o will_v admire_v that_o ever_o the_o world_n shall_v continue_v now_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o do_v so_o earnest_o expect_v be_v because_o they_o will_v be_v full_o serviceable_a to_o their_o creator_n they_o will_v be_v in_o such_o a_o state_n as_o may_v render_v they_o perfect_o conducible_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o creator_n it_o be_v their_o unhappiness_n and_o misery_n that_o sin_n have_v render_v they_o so_o much_o
man_n or_o angel_n be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o height_n of_o this_o blessedness_n iii_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o such_o a_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o instrument_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o outer_a darkness_n and_o swallow_v up_o of_o everlasting_a destruction_n when_o their_o day_n shall_v whole_o end_v their_o glory_n be_v finish_v and_o their_o prosperity_n be_v utter_o extinguish_v and_o overthrow_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o separate_v from_o god_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o blessedness_n of_o which_o separation_n chrysostome_n thus_o speak_v that_o if_o a_o thousand_o fire_n of_o hell_n be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v so_o great_a a_o pain_n to_o the_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o soul_n to_o be_v separate_v in_o this_o wise_a for_o ever_o from_o almighty_a god_n we_o read_v isa_n 14.9_o 10._o that_o the_o king_n and_o potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n seem_v to_o be_v bring_v into_o rejoice_v at_o the_o fall_n of_o lucifer_n viz._n the_o king_n of_o babylon_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v low_a it_o be_v matter_n of_o triumph_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o the_o lord_n save_v they_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o egyptian_n that_o pursue_v they_o to_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o that_o israel_n see_v the_o egyptian_n dead_a on_o the_o sea_n shore_n the_o water_n cover_v the_o chariot_n the_o horseman_n and_o all_o the_o host_n of_o pharaoh_n that_o come_v into_o the_o sea_n after_o they_o that_o there_o remain_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n walk_v upon_o dry_a land_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o water_n be_v a_o wall_n to_o they_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a exod._n 14.28_o 29._o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a privilege_n for_o noah_n to_o sit_v secure_a in_o the_o ark_n above_o the_o water_n that_o cover_v the_o top_n of_o the_o high_a mountain_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o the_o ungodly_a be_v drown_v and_o bury_v in_o the_o flood_n what_o then_o may_v we_o conceive_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v be_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v advance_v to_o the_o height_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n when_o their_o enemy_n shall_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o depth_n of_o shame_n and_o misery_n what_o encouragement_n may_v this_o be_v to_o we_o to_o raise_v our_o heart_n heaven-ward_n and_o to_o have_v our_o affection_n set_v on_o thing_n above_o while_o the_o heart_n of_o worldling_n be_v root_v in_o the_o earth_n that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o their_o end_n shall_v be_v destruction_n we_o may_v be_v put_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n shall_v not_o we_o be_v as_o unwilling_a now_o to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o they_o in_o their_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n as_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o be_v in_o heaven_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n iv_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o a_o time_n when_o all_o the_o labour_n sorrow_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n write_v say_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o st._n john_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o rev._n 14.13_o they_o shall_v then_o be_v ease_v from_o the_o toilsome_a and_o troublesome_a travel_n of_o this_o life_n be_v translate_v from_o this_o world_n vanity_n into_o heaven_n felicity_n where_o shall_v be_v neither_o labour_n in_o action_n nor_o pain_n in_o passion_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v neither_o annoy_v with_o pinch_v cold_a nor_o parch_a heat_n and_o as_o sleep_n be_v a_o rest_v and_o refresh_v to_o our_o weak_a frail_a and_o weary_a body_n so_o our_o body_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o bed_n of_o our_o grave_n they_o shall_v rest_v and_o be_v free_a from_o all_o sickness_n and_o sorrow_n weakness_n weariness_n and_o all_o work_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v fruit_n and_o effect_n yea_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o attendant_n of_o this_o life_n yea_o the_o saint_n after_o they_o have_v weary_v themselves_o in_o strive_v against_o sin_n in_o subdue_a corruption_n after_o they_o have_v spend_v themselves_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o after_o the_o enemy_n to_o piety_n have_v tire_v out_o themselves_o with_o malice_n scoff_v reproach_n slander_n persecution_n they_o shall_v rest_v from_o all_o their_o labour_n and_o suffering_n in_o perfect_a peace_n and_o blessedness_n and_o the_o fruit_n comfort_n and_o reward_n of_o their_o work_n shall_v follow_v they_o and_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o they_o shall_v then_o arrive_v at_o a_o safe_a harbour_n after_o a_o dangerous_a passage_n through_o shelf_n storm_n rock_n and_o pirate_n which_o then_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o welcome_a to_o they_o read_v st._n paul_n catalogue_n 2_o cor._n 11.23_o and_o think_v how_o sweet_a heaven_n will_v be_v to_o one_o that_o have_v have_v such_o a_o hard_a passage_n thither_o through_o labour_n more_o abundant_a stripe_n above_o measure_n many_o prison_n chain_n fetter_n whip_n scourge_n shipwreck_n death_n journeying_n peril_n of_o water_n robbery_n by_o his_o own_o countryman_n by_o the_o heathen_a true_a it_o be_v he_o give_v in_o a_o large_a bill_n of_o his_o charge_n as_o it_o be_v but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o his_o wage_n he_o make_v nothing_o of_o his_o labour_n and_o suffering_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o reward_n 2_o cor._n 4.17_o for_o these_o light_n and_o momentany_a affliction_n do_v work_v out_o for_o we_o a_o exceed_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n the_o high_a mountain_n in_o the_o world_n be_v very_a light_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n even_o so_o be_v the_o great_a affliction_n of_o the_o great_a sufferer_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v say_v of_o isachar_n gen._n 49.15_o that_o he_o see_v that_o rest_n be_v good_a and_o that_o the_o land_n be_v pleasant_a therefore_o he_o put_v his_o shoulder_n to_o labour_n and_o become_v servant_n to_o tribute_n so_o i_o may_v say_v the_o rest_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v good_a but_o the_o land_n that_o bring_v forth_o this_o rest_n will_v be_v best_a and_o most_o pleasant_a to_o they_o after_o all_o their_o labour_n and_o suffering_n be_v full_o end_v then_o to_o receive_v this_o glorious_a rest_n will_v be_v most_o sweet_a unto_o they_o and_o most_o seasonable_a be_v heaven_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o haven_n of_o rest_n we_o know_v how_o welcome_a the_o one_o be_v to_o a_o sea_n sick_a weather-beaten_a traveller_n and_o by_o that_o we_o may_v conceive_v how_o welcome_a the_o other_o will_v be_v to_o a_o soul_n that_o have_v be_v long_o toss_v in_o the_o wave_n of_o this_o troublesome_a world_n sick_a of_o its_o own_o sinful_a imagination_n and_o tire_v out_o with_o outward_a temptation_n the_o happy_a soul_n that_o ever_o have_v sail_v over_o this_o euripus_n in_o the_o best_a ship_n in_o the_o most_o healthful_a body_n that_o ever_o be_v never_o have_v so_o calm_a a_o passage_n say_v a_o good_a divine_a but_o that_o it_o have_v have_v cause_n enough_o often_o to_o wish_v itself_o on_o shore_n death_n sa._n ward_n on_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n in_o death_n be_v there_o any_o palace_n or_o tower_n here_o so_o high_a or_o strong_a that_o can_v keep_v disease_n from_o the_o body_n or_o care_n sorrow_n fear_n or_o satan_n assault_n from_o the_o soul_n be_v there_o but_o such_o a_o island_n as_o some_o have_v dream_v of_o here_o on_o earth_n that_o may_v free_v man_n body_n or_o mind_n from_o disquiet_n but_o for_o the_o time_n of_o this_o life_n how_o will_v people_n strive_v to_o dwell_v there_o certain_o in_o this_o heavenly_a country_n there_o shall_v be_v perfect_a tranquillity_n to_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o oh_o how_o will_v it_o ravish_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o saint_n when_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o course_n and_o be_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o race_n oh_o how_o sweet_a will_v heaven_n and_o how_o glorious_a will_v the_o crown_n of_o immortality_n be_v to_o they_o in_o the_o end_n if_o seaman_n when_o they_o have_v be_v many_o month_n upon_o the_o sea_n where_o they_o have_v encounter_v with_o many_o dreadful_a storm_n and_o boisterous_a tempest_n and_o have_v be_v often_o in_o danger_n of_o drown_v and_o shipwreck_n when_o they_o shall_v at_o last_o descry_v but_o a_o creek_n of_o land_n do_v leap_v for_o joy_n and_o cry_v out_o oh_o land_n land_n we_o be_v nigh_o to_o such_o a_o coast_n where_o we_o will_v be_v then_o much_o more_o those_o that_o have_v run_v
the_o christian_a race_n and_o have_v run_v over_o mountain_n of_o difficulty_n and_o encounter_v with_o many_o trial_n and_o tentation_n and_o at_o last_o have_v run_v they_o all_o down_o and_o be_v come_v in_o sight_n of_o the_o promise_a land_n of_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n how_o will_v their_o heart_n then_o leap_v for_o joy_n cry_v out_o oh_o here_o be_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n here_o be_v heaven_n that_o bless_a place_n here_o be_v the_o kingdom_n we_o have_v so_o often_o pray_v for_o lord_n let_v thy_o kingdom_n come_v here_o be_v the_o crown_n we_o have_v run_v for_o then_o will_v a_o christian_a say_v have_v this_o race_n that_o i_o have_v run_v be_v much_o long_a and_o more_o tedious_a than_o it_o be_v and_o shall_v i_o have_v meet_v with_o a_o thousand_o danger_n and_o difficulty_n more_o than_o i_o have_v do_v they_o have_v be_v nothing_o to_o this_o glorious_a crown_n brethren_n a_o few_o moment_n in_o heaven_n will_v make_v you_o amend_v enough_o for_o all_o your_o watch_n pray_v fast_v for_o all_o your_o labour_n of_o love_n for_o all_o the_o time_n you_o have_v spend_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v therefore_o faithful_a to_o the_o death_n he_o that_o endure_v to_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v chap._n fourteen_o sect_n i._o have_v speak_v of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n i_o shall_v now_o consider_v the_o other_o circumstance_n sc_n of_o the_o place_n of_o the_o saint_n happiness_n this_o also_o be_v very_o considerable_a when_o man_n be_v create_v holy_a and_o happy_a papismi_fw-la heylin_n geograph_n willet_n synop_n papismi_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o give_v we_o a_o exact_a description_n of_o the_o very_a place_n where_o god_n set_v he_o show_v in_o what_o coast_n of_o the_o world_n paradise_n be_v situate_a sc_n in_o eden_n which_o the_o learned_a say_v be_v part_n of_o mesopotamia_n with_o what_o goodly_a and_o beautiful_a plant_n that_o garden_n be_v furnish_v 1._o paradisum_fw-la vocant_fw-la graeci_fw-la locum_fw-la irriguum_fw-la &_o a_o oenum_fw-la omni_fw-la florum_fw-la varietate_fw-la distinctum_fw-la &_o sempiternis_fw-la arboribus_fw-la consitum_fw-la aprissimum_fw-la ad_fw-la aetatem_fw-la feliciter_fw-la degendam_fw-la ossor_n lusitam_fw-la de_fw-fr nobilit_fw-la christiana_n lib._n 1._o with_o what_o river_n it_o be_v water_v genes_n 2.8_o 9_o this_o be_v a_o great_a addition_n to_o man_n happiness_n in_o that_o condition_n and_o st._n paul_n 2_o cor._n 12._o call_v the_o three_o heaven_n paradise_n as_o if_o this_o garden_n of_o eden_n have_v be_v a_o shadow_n of_o heaven_n the_o place_n of_o the_o bless_a when_o the_o lord_n choose_v israel_n out_o of_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o plant_v they_o in_o canaan_n a_o figure_n of_o heaven_n you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o exact_a geographical_a description_n be_v give_v of_o it_o in_o the_o book_n of_o josua_n chap._n 15_o 16_o 17._o and_o elsewhere_o the_o fertility_n and_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o country_n be_v frequent_o commend_v how_o incomparable_a then_o be_v the_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n and_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o celestial_a canaan_n i._o it_o be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o saint_n melchizedeck_v call_v god_n the_o possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n gen._n 14._o the_o whole_a create_a world_n be_v his_o possession_n but_o the_o heaven_n be_v his_o glorious_a palace_n as_o a_o prince_n that_o have_v a_o whole_a kingdom_n under_o he_o keep_v his_o court_n in_o the_o principal_a place_n of_o his_o dominion_n 1._o as_o a_o man_n house_n be_v or_o shall_v be_v situate_v in_o the_o best_a and_o most_o convenient_a part_n of_o his_o possession_n so_o of_o all_o thing_n create_v heaven_n be_v the_o goodly_a and_o most_o glorious_a part_n the_o earth_n be_v beautiful_a especial_o in_o the_o prime_n of_o the_o spring_n and_o summer_n when_o the_o face_n of_o it_o be_v renew_v but_o yet_o when_o it_o be_v in_o its_o great_a glory_n it_o be_v but_o a_o dunghill_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o heaven_n that_o glory_n of_o the_o heaven_n which_o we_o see_v on_o the_o outside_n and_o afar_o off_o be_v incomparable_o beyond_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o thing_n below_o but_o that_o which_o we_o can_v see_v do_v far_o surmount_v that_o which_o we_o do_v see_v i_o mean_v that_o most_o glorious_a habitation_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n though_o that_o which_o we_o behold_v have_v incomparable_o more_o beauty_n and_o glory_n in_o it_o than_o our_o weak_a sight_n can_v discern_v at_o such_o a_o distance_n and_o therefore_o the_o heaven_n for_o their_o surpass_a beauty_n and_o glory_n be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n 2._o as_o a_o man_n be_v common_o to_o be_v see_v at_o his_o own_o house_n more_o than_o at_o another_o place_n beside_o so_o do_v the_o lord_n in_o heaven_n more_o especial_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n the_o lord_n have_v be_v but_o seldom_o manifest_v on_o the_o earth_n as_o when_o he_o give_v so_o many_o visible_a sign_n of_o his_o glorious_a presence_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n and_o then_o when_o moses_n be_v admit_v to_o see_v his_o back_n part_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v from_o heaven_n at_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o heaven_n his_o presence_n be_v more_o notable_o manifest_v continual_o our_o saviour_n show_v that_o in_o heaven_n the_o holy_a angel_n do_v always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n matth._n 18.10_o his_o glorious_a presence_n be_v always_o manifest_v there_o 3._o in_o a_o man_n dwell_v house_n usual_o his_o child_n and_o servant_n be_v abide_v and_o although_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v more_o servant_n and_o officer_n than_o a_o house_n can_v hold_v yet_o their_o principal_a attendant_n be_v common_o with_o they_o in_o the_o court_n so_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n appoint_v for_o the_o lord_n servant_n though_o all_o of_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o there_o not_o for_o want_v of_o room_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v they_o other_o work_n to_o do_v elsewhere_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o thither_o shall_v they_o be_v gather_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v his_o principal_a attendant_n there_o be_v the_o glorious_a angel_n who_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n matth._n 24.36_o there_o also_o be_v the_o bless_a saint_n of_o god_n depart_v 4._o as_o a_o man_n house_n wherein_o he_o dwell_v be_v furnish_v for_o the_o most_o part_n so_o that_o his_o riches_n appear_v in_o some_o sort_n in_o his_o house_n so_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n which_o be_v most_o royal_o furnish_v the_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o country_n farm-house_n in_o comparison_n of_o it_o heaven_n be_v rich_o adorn_v and_o furnish_v with_o perfect_a holiness_n all_o the_o vessel_n of_o that_o house_n be_v of_o pure_a gold_n there_o be_v neither_o dross_n in_o they_o nor_o any_o uncleanness_n cleave_v to_o they_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n there_o be_v free_a from_o all_o impurity_n no_o unclean_a thing_n have_v entrance_n into_o this_o house_n of_o god_n holiness_n become_v thy_o house_n o_o lord_n for_o ever_o psal_n 93.5_o it_o be_v full_a of_o all_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n it_o be_v say_v rev._n 21.25_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n shall_v not_o be_v shut_v at_o all_o heaven_n gate_n shall_v always_o stand_v open_a yet_o no_o unclean_a thing_n shall_v enter_v in_o the_o street_n of_o that_o city_n be_v of_o pure_a gold_n the_o wall_n build_v of_o precious_a stone_n there_o be_v twelve_o gate_n of_o twelve_o pearl_n a_o good_a expositor_n observe_v that_o all_o those_o precious_a stone_n there_o mention_v have_v a_o contrary_a virtue_n against_o uncleanness_n to_o show_v unto_o we_o that_o heaven_n will_v not_o admit_v of_o any_o impure_a and_o defile_a thing_n god_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o dirty_a foot_n of_o impure_a sinner_n to_o tread_v upon_o his_o pure_a pavement_n of_o gold_n when_o god_n drive_v sinful_a adam_n out_o of_o paradise_n he_o cause_v a_o cherubin_n to_o stand_v before_o the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n with_o a_o flame_a sword_n in_o his_o hand_n to_o keep_v he_o out_o of_o paradise_n if_o he_o shall_v attempt_v to_o come_v in_o again_o sin_n be_v like_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o flame_a cherubin_n to_o keep_v out_o all_o wicked_a man_n from_o enter_v into_o heaven_n heaven_n be_v also_o a_o place_n of_o holy_a exercise_n here_o our_o best_a service_n be_v stain_v with_o sin_n and_o taint_v with_o corruption_n but_o there_o all_o the_o service_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v bear_v a_o lively_a impression_n of_o the_o fountain_n of_o holiness_n upon_o they_o there_o they_o must_v warble_v forth_o the_o song_n of_o the_o seraphim_n holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n almighty_a isai_n 6.3_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o saint_n of_o
god_n in_o glory_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n rev._n 20.6_o as_o they_o be_v all_o make_v spiritual_a king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n on_o earth_n rev._n 1.6_o so_o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n to_o god_n in_o heaven_n and_o reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n to_o god_n two_o way_n in_o heaven_n first_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o leave_v this_o life_n in_o the_o interim_n before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n they_o shall_v perform_v the_o office_n of_o priest_n in_o soul_n only_o offer_v to_o god_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n that_o themselves_o be_v already_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o misery_n of_o this_o world_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o brethren_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o they_o may_v short_o be_v deliver_v for_o so_o st._n john_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o see_v under_o the_o altar_n the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v slay_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o hold_v cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n how_o long_o o_o lord_n holy_a and_o true_a do_v not_o thou_o avenge_v our_o blood_n upon_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n rom._n 6.9_o 10._o and_o second_o at_o christ_n second_o come_v both_o they_o that_o be_v decease_v already_o and_o they_o that_o shall_v then_o be_v find_v alive_a shall_v joint_o and_o joyful_o sing_v haleluia_o salvation_n and_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n unto_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n for_o true_a and_o righteous_a be_v his_o judgement_n rev._n 19.1_o 2._o and_o v._o 6._o st._n john_n say_v he_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n and_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o water_n and_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o mighty_a thundering_n say_v haleluia_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n omnipotent_a reign_v let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v honour_n to_o he_o for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o his_o wife_n have_v make_v herself_o ready_a the_o high_a praise_n of_o god_n shall_v then_o be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o saint_n be_v now_o make_v perfect_a in_o holiness_n and_o free_v from_o all_o frailty_n they_o shall_v never_o mourn_v but_o ever_o sing_v and_o laud_v their_o redeemer_n without_o defatigation_n or_o satiety_n but_o to_o pass_v by_o this_o it_o be_v needful_a in_o few_o word_n to_o show_v how_o the_o heaven_n can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o those_o building_n wherein_o man_n dwell_v be_v call_v their_o house_n lest_o any_o shall_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o entertain_v any_o vain_a thought_n not_o beseem_v the_o infinite_a majesty_n of_o god_n 1._o heaven_n can_v contain_v and_o hold_v the_o infinite_a be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o the_o house_n hold_v he_o that_o dwell_v in_o it_o behold_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n can_v contain_v thou_o 2._o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o heaven_n either_o for_o rest_n or_o safety_n as_o a_o man_n have_v of_o his_o house_n he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o weariness_n no_o work_n be_v toilsome_a to_o he_o he_o slumber_v not_o sleep_v not_o he_o be_v above_o all_o danger_n one_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n be_v enough_o to_o crush_v all_o enemy_n to_o powder_n he_o need_v not_o this_o house_n as_o a_o castle_n of_o defence_n unto_o he_o 3._o he_o be_v not_o more_o essential_o present_a there_o then_o in_o any_o other_o place_n nor_o more_o absent_a from_o any_o other_o place_n then_o from_o it_o but_o every_o where_o alike_o essential_o present_a though_o there_o he_o give_v forth_o more_o glorious_a demonstration_n of_o his_o presence_n then_o in_o any_o other_o place_n sect_n ii_o see_v heaven_n be_v god_n house_n than_o there_o shall_v our_o heart_n be_v even_o at_o home_n with_o our_o father_n how_o can_v we_o sing_v the_o lord_n song_n in_o a_o strange_a land_n how_o can_v we_o please_v ourselves_o so_o well_o in_o this_o house_n of_o our_o pilgrimage_n when_o we_o be_v from_o home_n thus_o far_o absent_a from_o our_o father_n house_n why_o be_v our_o mind_n so_o knit_v unto_o the_o earth_n that_o nothing_o ●ut_v loath_a will_v part_v it_o and_o we_o as_o if_o not_o heaven_n but_o this_o low_a sinful_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o lord_n be_v dwell_v place_n with_o what_o face_n can_v we_o call_v he_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n our_o strong_a and_o most_o hearty_a affection_n be_v deep_o bury_v in_o the_o earth_n st._n paul_n be_v of_o another_o temper_n i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v say_v he_o and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v best_a of_o all_o best_a of_o all_o so_o the_o bless_a apostle_n find_v and_o feel_v it_o he_o speak_v out_o of_o a_o true_a discern_a spirit_n he_o speak_v as_o he_o find_v he_o desire_v heaven_n for_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o so_o much_o for_o love_n of_o his_o own_o ease_n and_o happiness_n though_o he_o can_v not_o but_o long_o for_o that_o also_o but_o principal_o for_o love_v of_o christ_n therefore_o he_o long_v to_o leave_v the_o earth_n and_o go_v to_o heaven_n because_o that_o be_v the_o house_n of_o christ_n the_o house_n where_o god_n the_o father_n show_v his_o glorious_a presence_n the_o house_n where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a oh_o that_o i_o be_v there_o say_v that_o holy_a apostle_n let_v i_o go_v through_o poverty_n through_o persecution_n fire_n sword_z stripe_n imprisonment_n and_o a_o thousand_o death_n and_o danger_n so_o that_o i_o can_v but_o get_v unto_o my_o saviour_n it_o be_v best_o of_o all_o to_o be_v with_o he_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v better_o then_o to_o be_v with_o sinful_a man_n better_a then_o to_o be_v with_o a_o multitude_n of_o unruly_a corruption_n cleave_v to_o i_o shall_v i_o say_v better_o than_o to_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heap_n of_o gold_n or_o all_o manner_n of_o earthly_a abundance_n i_o will_v not_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o saviour_n once_o bring_v he_o in_o comparison_n with_o these_o dunghill_n and_o heap_n of_o dross_n but_o it_o be_v best_o of_o all_o to_o be_v with_o he_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v with_o he_o then_o simple_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n itself_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v with_o he_o out_o of_o heaven_n then_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n without_o he_o if_o that_o be_v possible_a yea_o if_o be_v with_o christ_n be_v not_o salvation_n itself_o i_o will_v say_v that_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n be_v better_o than_o salvation_n it_o be_v best_o of_o all_o now_o then_o when_o heaven_n be_v thus_o glorious_a when_o our_o dear_a saviour_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n be_v enter_v within_o those_o everlasting_a door_n when_o it_o be_v the_o very_a house_n of_o god_n how_o shall_v we_o long_o after_o it_o that_o we_o may_v be_v with_o the_o lord_n what_o shame_n shall_v it_o cast_v upon_o our_o face_n who_o have_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v our_o gaol_n now_o become_v more_o please_v to_o we_o then_o our_o father_n house_n do_v we_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o earthly_a mind_v oh_o that_o we_o have_v more_o of_o heaven_n in_o we_o to_o raise_v and_o draw_v our_o heart_n thither_o and_o less_o earth_n to_o sink_v we_o downward_o let_v we_o pray_v and_o labour_n for_o more_o supernatural_a and_o heavenly_a affection_n then_o we_o shall_v find_v our_o heart_n rise_v and_o lift_v upward_o moreover_o if_o heaven_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o place_n of_o his_o special_a presence_n this_o shall_v move_v we_o all_o to_o labour_v to_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v fit_a for_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n do_v we_o not_o all_o desire_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n alas_o many_o of_o we_o do_v little_o consider_v what_o heaven_n be_v or_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n it_o be_v true_a that_o none_o even_o those_o that_o be_v most_o heavenly_a mind_a can_v consider_v of_o it_o according_a to_o its_o excellent_a glory_n yet_o some_o there_o be_v who_o though_o they_o can_v conceive_v it_o for_o the_o height_n of_o its_o excellency_n yet_o they_o conceive_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o though_o not_o the_o measure_n they_o conceive_v of_o what_o kind_n of_o what_o temper_n that_o glory_n and_o happiness_n be_v which_o they_o shall_v receive_v by_o that_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o a_o man_n know_v in_o what_o coin_n he_o shall_v be_v pay_v by_o that_o money_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v in_o earnest_n already_o but_o many_o other_o know_v not_o what_o heaven_n mean_v how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o can_v now_o endure_v the_o presence_n
of_o god_n and_o yet_o will_v fain_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o hate_v this_o house_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o long_o to_o be_v in_o that_o heavenly_a house_n of_o god_n assure_v thyself_o that_o unless_o thou_o can_v delight_v in_o god_n presence_n here_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o delight_n in_o his_o presence_n there_o the_o happiness_n of_o that_o house_n be_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a there_o be_v nothing_o to_o please_v the_o covetous_a heart_n nothing_o to_o fill_v the_o wanton_a eye_n nothing_o to_o satisfy_v the_o drunkard_n and_o glutton_n appetite_n no_o wanton_a dance_n no_o idle_a sport_n nothing_o but_o holiness_n and_o holy_a exercise_n and_o that_o glory_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o holiness_n and_o arise_v from_o it_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n nor_o a_o thought_n but_o what_o become_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n such_o as_o abide_v his_o pure_a eye_n now_o then_o do_v thou_o o_o christian_n bend_v thy_o heart_n and_o soul_n towards_o this_o house_n and_o presence_n of_o god_n so_o shall_v thou_o be_v a_o pillar_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v go_v out_o of_o it_o no_o more_o but_o shall_v possess_v fullness_n of_o joy_n in_o his_o presence_n for_o evermore_o sect_n iii_o now_o in_o this_o house_n of_o god_n be_v many_o mansion_n in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 14.2_o heaven_n be_v sufficient_a to_o receive_v many_o inhabitant_n i_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o be_v like_o some_o great_a house_n that_o have_v no_o inhabitant_n but_o that_o it_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o dwell_a place_n for_o many_o many_o i_o say_v not_o in_o comparison_n of_o those_o multitude_n which_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o of_o door_n but_o many_o in_o a_o absolute_a consideration_n take_v by_o themselves_o yet_o these_o many_o shall_v be_v very_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o drove_n of_o man_n that_o throng_v together_o in_o the_o broad_a way_n of_o destruction_n of_o the_o largeness_n of_o this_o house_n of_o god_n solomon_n speak_v when_o he_o compare_v it_o with_o that_o temple_n which_o he_o have_v build_v 1_o king_n 8.27_o will_v god_n indeed_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n behold_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n can_v contain_v thou_o how_o much_o less_o this_o house_n which_o i_o have_v build_v what_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n be_v dwell_v in_o this_o little_a house_n which_o i_o have_v build_v then_o he_o put_v in_o a_o special_a note_n of_o attention_n and_o admiration_n behold_v even_o those_o large_a and_o spacious_a heaven_n which_o himself_o have_v build_v and_o spread_v out_o like_o a_o glorious_a curtain_n over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o all_o thing_n between_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o can_v contain_v he_o how_o much_o less_o this_o house_n which_o i_o have_v make_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o heaven_n be_v incompa●●bly_o great_a than_o this_o house_n which_o i_o have_v build_v but_o he_o be_v infinite_o great_a than_o the_o heaven_n yea_o our_o eye_n may_v teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v of_o wonderful_a greatness_n although_o we_o can_v see_v how_o large_a it_o be_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o earth_n be_v of_o a_o wonderful_a compass_n and_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v but_o as_o a_o spot_n or_o little_a ball_n hang_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o encompass_v round_o with_o those_o goodly_a sphere_n and_o orbs._n yea_o even_o a_o child_n may_v learn_v thus_o much_o from_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n with_o a_o little_a help_n that_o see_v the_o sun_n be_v big_a enough_o to_o give_v light_n to_o half_a the_o earth_n at_o once_o and_o yet_o seem_v so_o little_a to_o our_o eye_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v at_o a_o wonderful_a distance_n from_o we_o perhaps_o many_o thousand_o mile_n now_o then_o of_o what_o wonderful_a bigness_n be_v the_o heaven_n itself_o be_v so_o far_o above_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o compass_v all_o those_o huge_a space_n round_o about_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v between_o the_o earth_n and_o heaven_n neither_o may_v we_o think_v but_o that_o this_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v yet_o far_o above_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o sun_n out_o of_o which_o the_o psalmist_n say_v he_o come_v at_o his_o rise_n consider_v then_o christian_a reader_n what_o do_v ever_o any_o man_n find_v in_o the_o earth_n that_o shall_v make_v he_o so_o willing_a to_o sell_v heaven_n for_o it_o if_o a_o man_n can_v have_v it_o all_o it_o be_v not_o comparable_a to_o the_o low_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n if_o any_o be_v low_a than_o other_o all_o be_v vanity_n say_v the_o preacher_n speak_v of_o all_o thing_n under_o the_o sun_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o those_o large_a spacious_a and_o glorious_a mansion_n above_o the_o sun_n who_o then_o can_v sufficient_o detest_v that_o folly_n which_o prefer_v the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o the_o lord_n tread_v under_o foot_n as_o his_o footstool_n above_o the_o glorious_a heaven_n the_o large_a extent_n whereof_o surround_v and_o encompass_v the_o whole_a world_n how_o shall_v this_o comfort_n christian_n that_o though_o they_o be_v pen_v up_o and_o straighten_a here_o yet_o in_o heaven_n they_o shall_v have_v room_n enough_o there_o shall_v be_v rehoboth_n there_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v room_n for_o we_o here_o be_v comfort_n against_o those_o engross_a oppressor_n which_o join_v house_n to_o house_n and_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o the_o poor_a if_o thou_o labour_v to_o be_v rich_a in_o faith_n thou_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o can_v shoulder_v thou_o out_o from_o a_o happy_a and_o large_a possession_n in_o that_o heavenly_a kingdom_n may_v thou_o not_o take_v comfort_n in_o a_o smoky_a cottage_n assure_v thyself_o of_o thy_o part_n in_o a_o most_o glorious_a palace_n what_o if_o thou_o have_v but_o little_a of_o the_o earth_n or_o none_o at_o all_o be_v it_o not_o abundant_o sufficient_a that_o thou_o shall_v enjoy_v so_o much_o of_o heaven_n as_o thy_o soul_n can_v desire_v yea_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o enclosure_n there_o but_o all_o that_o glorious_a inheritance_n shall_v lie_v common_a to_o all_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n look_v not_o with_o a_o long_a eye_n upon_o a_o fair_a or_o more_o convenient_a house_n then_o thy_o own_o upon_o wide_a field_n and_o great_a possession_n than_o any_o that_o thou_o be_v owner_n of_o upon_o earth_n but_o overlook_a all_o these_o and_o say_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n grace_n with_o a_o heart_n rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n yet_o i_o have_v more_o than_o all_o the_o world_n be_v worth_a moreover_o none_o of_o the_o faithful_a need_n to_o fear_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o for_o want_n of_o room_n in_o this_o heavenly_a palace_n here_o be_v many_o mansion_n here_o be_v a_o place_n appoint_v for_o every_o true_a believer_n the_o poor_a christian_n shall_v not_o miss_v of_o a_o happy_a habitation_n in_o this_o house_n of_o our_o father_n lazarus_n though_o he_o lie_v full_a of_o sore_n and_o rag_n without_o door_n there_o on_o earth_n yet_o there_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o sweet_a repose_n in_o abraham_n bosom_n let_v this_o comfort_n a_o believer_n against_o all_o solitariness_n and_o want_v of_o company_n in_o this_o life_n in_o the_o house_n of_o thy_o heavenly_a father_n be_v many_o mansion_n and_o these_o shall_v not_o stand_v empty_a for_o want_v of_o inhabitant_n oh_o what_o troop_n of_o glorious_a angel_n and_o saint_n shall_v live_v together_o in_o those_o heavenly_a mansion_n how_o shall_v they_o flock_v together_o from_o the_o east_n and_o from_o the_o west_n and_o from_o the_o north_n and_o from_o the_o south_n there_o sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a weakness_n to_o be_v discontent_v for_o want_n of_o company_n but_o a_o great_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o reproof_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o narrow_a way_n because_o it_o be_v so_o solitary_a and_o to_o turn_v into_o the_o common_a road_n because_o of_o company_n oh_o the_o folly_n and_o infidelity_n of_o our_o heart_n can_v we_o not_o with_o patience_n stay_v for_o so_o much_o good_a company_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v and_o for_o ever_o enjoy_v in_o our_o father_n house_n for_o although_o the_o number_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v shall_v be_v but_o a_o very_a small_a number_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o numberless_a multitude_n that_o be_v already_o lose_v and_o do_v hasten_v to_o destruction_n although_o when_o the_o church_n be_v great_a upon_o earth_n as_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o number_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v much_o exceed_v it_o yet_o take_v those_o many_o thousand_o of_o holy_a angel_n which_o keep_v their_o first_o estate_n and_o join_v to_o these_o multitude_n of_o holy_a man_n
32._o say_v st._n augustine_n though_o he_o be_v our_o creator_n and_o our_o sovereign_n because_o it_o be_v the_o fervency_n of_o our_o desire_n and_o the_o sweetness_n of_o our_o hope_n that_o put_v this_o name_n into_o our_o mouth_n 5._o it_o be_v a_o sure_a and_o safe_a inheritance_n it_o be_v reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o 1_o pet._n 1.4_o a_o christian_n tenure_n be_v the_o fair_a firm_a and_o sure_a therefore_o it_o be_v great_a wisdom_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o this_o heavenly_a inheritance_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o we_o know_v it_o be_v worldly_a wisdom_n to_o lay_v up_o our_o treasure_n in_o safe_a place_n and_o shall_v not_o we_o be_v so_o wise_a in_o spiritual_a matter_n where_o our_o treasure_n far_o surpass_v all_o earthly_a thing_n now_o here_o let_v we_o see_v the_o difference_n between_o temporal_a inheritance_n and_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n i._o some_o earthly_a parent_n be_v very_o poor_a and_o can_v leave_v their_o child_n no_o inheritance_n to_o make_v they_o heir_n only_o they_o inherit_v their_o corruption_n and_o punishment_n due_a to_o they_o but_o all_o god_n child_n be_v rich_a heir_n they_o be_v all_o fellow_n citizen_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n eph._n 2.19_o they_o be_v all_o make_v meet_a partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o light_n colos_n 1.12_o christ_n be_v the_o great_a heir_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v they_o never_o so_o poor_a outward_o yet_o be_v they_o coheir_n with_o christ_n heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n james_n 2.5_o ii_o father_n that_o have_v inheritance_n do_v often_o leave_v they_o but_o to_o one_o of_o their_o child_n as_o abraham_n leave_v the_o inheritance_n to_o isaac_n and_o give_v gift_n only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o the_o concubine_n gen._n 25.5_o 6._o but_o here_o all_o god_n child_n have_v the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n upon_o earth_n if_o all_o do_v inherit_v the_o father_n substance_n than_o it_o be_v divide_v and_o every_o one_o have_v the_o less_o but_o heaven_n be_v not_o divide_v by_o lot_n as_o canaan_n be_v which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o it_o there_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o one_o do_v not_o diminish_v the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o other_o their_o inheritance_n be_v so_o large_a that_o the_o number_n of_o heir_n can_v diminish_v it_o the_o good_a that_o they_o hope_v for_o have_v two_o property_n that_o secure_v it_o from_o envy_n it_o be_v one_o and_o can_v be_v divide_v it_o be_v infinite_a and_o suffice_v many_o thousand_o its_o unity_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o every_o one_o possess_v it_o entire_a it_o be_v infinity_n that_o none_o be_v afraid_a of_o a_o lessen_v they_o be_v all_o rich_a of_o the_o same_o inheritance_n they_o be_v all_o happy_a by_o the_o same_o felicity_n for_o as_o gregory_n say_v that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n unto_o all_o be_v one_o and_o unto_o one_o be_v all_o for_o as_o much_o as_o every_o one_o of_o the_o bless_a saint_n rejoice_v as_o much_o at_o the_o joy_n and_o felicity_n of_o all_o other_o as_o if_o he_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o same_o heaven_n become_v all_o to_o all_o and_o all_o to_o every_o one_o as_o all_o enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n when_o it_o shine_v every_o one_o in_o heaven_n be_v well_o please_v with_o another_o happiness_n and_o with_o his_o own_o and_o the_o charity_n that_o reign_v among_o the_o saint_n there_o do_v so_o intimate_o unite_v their_o heart_n that_o the_o diversity_n of_o particular_n disturb_v not_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o whole_a iii_o on_o earth_n parent_n leave_v their_o inheritance_n to_o their_o child_n because_o they_o die_v and_o can_v keep_v they_o no_o long_o but_o god_n live_v for_o ever_o and_o bestow_v the_o inheritance_n upon_o we_o in_o the_o world_n parent_n die_v before_o their_o child_n may_v inherit_v but_o god_n be_v immortal_a and_o death_n never_o separate_v the_o child_n from_o the_o father_n he_o have_v heir_n but_o no_o successor_n he_o despoil_v not_o himself_o to_o enrich_v they_o but_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o they_o he_o confer_v his_o inheritance_n upon_o they_o without_o lose_v it_o iv_o in_o this_o world_n all_o son_n and_o heir_n do_v not_o live_v to_o take_v possession_n of_o their_o inheritance_n but_o all_o god_n heir_n shall_v be_v infallible_o possess_v of_o their_o heavenly_a inheritance_n the_o possession_n thereof_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o by_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n to_o conduct_v they_o to_o heaven_n and_o put_v they_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o inheritance_n in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o in_o their_o best_a state_n when_o they_o be_v most_o fit_v and_o qualify_v to_o that_o condition_n which_o be_v suitable_a to_o their_o state_n for_o in_o the_o state_n that_o now_o we_o be_v we_o be_v not_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o be_v put_v into_o possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n v._o some_o heir_n if_o they_o live_v to_o be_v of_o age_n yet_o they_o be_v often_o keep_v from_o their_o inheritance_n defraud_v of_o it_o or_o unjust_o turn_v out_o of_o it_o that_o either_o they_o come_v not_o into_o actual_a possession_n or_o can_v long_o keep_v it_o but_o none_o shall_v keep_v god_n child_n out_o of_o their_o inheritance_n or_o defraud_v they_o of_o it_o now_o this_o inheritance_n come_v to_o we_o by_o the_o right_n of_o sonship_n only_o if_o son_n than_o heir_n say_v st._n paul_n rom._n 8.17_o only_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v heir_n of_o heaven_n the_o wicked_a have_v no_o portion_n in_o this_o inheritance_n it_o be_v for_o son_n the_o son_n of_o hagar_n must_v have_v no_o inheritance_n with_o the_o son_n of_o sarah_n the_o bondwoman_n and_o her_o son_n must_v be_v cast_v out_o the_o wicked_a be_v like_o slave_n who_o labour_v not_o but_o for_o their_o master_n they_o till_o the_o ground_n but_o reap_v not_o the_o fruit_n they_o plant_v vine-yard_n but_o drink_v not_o of_o the_o wine_n they_o suffer_v much_o pain_n and_o another_o taste_v the_o pleasure_n they_o be_v not_o as_o wife_n call_v into_o a_o community_n of_o good_n they_o be_v not_o as_o child_n admit_v to_o share_v in_o the_o inheritance_n but_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n find_v riches_n in_o their_o poor_a outward_a estate_n their_o master_n adopt_v they_o for_o his_o child_n make_v they_o his_o heir_n and_o before_o he_o give_v they_o his_o glory_n for_o their_o portion_n he_o give_v they_o the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o their_o assurance_n of_o this_o inheritance_n then_o cast_v away_o all_o cark_n care_n o_o christian_n since_o thy_o inheritance_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o be_v not_o disquiet_v though_o haply_o god_n deal_v no_o better_o with_o thou_o for_o the_o present_a then_o with_o a_o servant_n for_o that_o be_v a_o discipline_n fit_a to_o prepare_v thou_o for_o thy_o inheritance_n god_n may_v bring_v some_o great_a and_o sharp_a affliction_n upon_o thou_o he_o may_v beat_v thou_o buffet_v thou_o scourge_v thou_o yet_o thou_o can_v not_o loose_v thy_o inheritance_n for_o it_o be_v entail_v and_o god_n have_v make_v it_o sure_o to_o thou_o by_o his_o promise_n rom._n 9.8_o ephes_n 1.13_o 14._o heb._n 6.17_o oh_o do_v not_o grudge_v at_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v they_o prosper_v have_v they_o all_o thing_n at_o will_n thou_o be_v not_o inferior_a to_o they_o for_o thou_o also_o have_v a_o inheritance_n reserve_v for_o thou_o and_o this_o inheritance_n be_v not_o buy_v by_o thou_o but_o fit_v and_o prepare_v for_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o ruinous_a cottage_n but_o that_o which_o be_v fit_a for_o thy_o purpose_n when_o thou_o come_v to_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o loss_n thou_o meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n loss_n of_o wife_n child_n good_n friend_n life_n yet_o thou_o can_v not_o lose_v thy_o inheritance_n this_o cause_v the_o hebrew_n with_o joy_n to_o endure_v the_o spoil_n of_o their_o good_n know_v that_o in_o heaven_n they_o have_v a_o more_o endure_a substance_n hebr._n 10.34_o let_v we_o all_o therefore_o labour_v to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v so_o let_v we_o labour_v for_o faith_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o labour_n after_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n hereby_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v meet_a partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o light_n col._n 1.12_o the_o inheritance_n be_v give_v to_o the_o sanctify_a act_v 26.18_o to_o such_o as_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o of_o christ_n by_o faith_n unfeigned_a gal._n 3.29_o let_v we_o all_o labour_n to_o make_v god_n our_o inheritance_n as_o god_n have_v right_a and_o
all-sufficient_a and_o a_o all-satisfying_a reward_n when_o the_o great_a day_n of_o recompense_n shall_v come_v wherein_o god_n will_v bestow_v his_o reward_n upon_o his_o saint_n all_o heaven_n shall_v cry_v out_o lord_n i_o have_v enough_o i_o need_v no_o more_o i_o desire_v no_o more_o this_o reward_n be_v common_a to_o million_o of_o glorify_a saint_n and_o all_o be_v satisfy_v with_o it_o christ_n himself_o be_v a_o most_o satisfy_a object_n the_o beauty_n of_o his_o face_n the_o smell_n of_o his_o garment_n the_o sea_n and_o rivers_n of_o salvation_n that_o capacious_a and_o wide_a heaven_n where_o god_n his_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v be_v intrinsical_o and_o of_o themselves_o most_o ravish_a and_o soul-satisfying_a object_n there_o the_o soul_n drink_v and_o drink_v abundant_o and_o be_v full_o satisfy_v so_o that_o the_o vessel_n can_v hold_v no_o more_o there_o the_o soul_n be_v always_o quiet_o repose_v itself_o in_o the_o arm_n and_o embrace_n of_o the_o glorious_a prince_n immanuel_n always_o suck_v the_o breast_n of_o his_o eternal_a consolation_n and_o delight_v itself_o with_o the_o abundance_n of_o glory_n 3._o it_o be_v call_v a_o great_a reward_n comparate_v compare_v to_o the_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n of_o saint_n in_o this_o world_n for_o as_o learned_a spanhemius_fw-la observe_v on_o matth._n 5.11_o evangel_n spanhem_n dub_v evangel_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o make_v comparison_n between_o reward_n and_o reward_n of_o saint_n the_o great_a and_o the_o lesser_a between_o crown_n of_o glory_n one_o more_o illustrious_a than_o another_o but_o between_o our_o service_n on_o earth_n and_o god_n reward_n in_o heaven_n it_o be_v then_o a_o great_a or_o mu●h_a reward_n in_o order_n to_o our_o suffering_n let_v the_o measure_n of_o our_o persecution_n be_v full_a press_v down_o and_o run_v over_o yet_o our_o reward_n shall_v be_v infinite_o more_o full_a press_v down_o and_o run_v over_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v infinite_o exceed_v the_o smart_n of_o all_o their_o suffering_n as_o have_v before_o be_v large_o declare_v quest_n here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o we_o may_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o reward_n in_o our_o obedience_n the_o papist_n cry_v out_o upon_o we_o as_o if_o we_o do_v deny_v that_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o promise_a reward_n to_o quicken_v they_o to_o duty_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o mistake_v divine_n have_v subscribe_v to_o this_o opinion_n that_o in_o no_o case_n a_o godly_a man_n be_v to_o eye_n the_o glory_n promise_v to_o quicken_v he_o to_o duty_n because_o say_v they_o in_o so_o do_v we_o show_v forth_o mercenary_a not_o filial_a duty_n and_o we_o do_v not_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o god_n sake_n but_o for_o the_o reward_n resp_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o may_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o glorious_a reward_n else_o why_o do_v our_o saviour_n here_o and_o in_o other_o place_n propose_v the_o reward_n to_o we_o and_o promise_v a_o reward_n and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o moses_n that_o he_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n heb._n 11.26_o yea_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n heb._n 12.2_o that_o for_o the_o glory_n set_v before_o he_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n and_o despise_v the_o shame_n although_o we_o may_v not_o chief_o aim_v at_o our_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o performance_n of_o god_n pleasure_n yet_o sure_o we_o may_v be_v move_v to_o the_o do_v our_o duty_n for_o hope_n of_o reward_n as_o also_o restrain_v from_o sin_n though_o not_o principal_o yet_o partly_o for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n else_o why_o will_v god_n use_v threaten_n and_o promise_n in_o the_o scripture_n say_v peter_n martyr_n come_v pet._n mart._n loc_fw-la come_v here_o let_v we_o observe_v these_o rule_n 1._o the_o glory_n of_o god_n must_v be_v the_o primary_n mark_v at_o which_o we_o must_v chief_o aim_v as_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n primary_o for_o his_o glory_n so_o must_v we_o do_v all_o to_o the_o same_o end_n do_v our_o life_n stand_v in_o competition_n with_o god_n glory_n we_o ought_v to_o choose_v rather_o to_o seek_v the_o advance_n of_o god_n glory_n then_o to_o seek_v to_o preserve_v our_o life_n nay_o if_o our_o very_a salvation_n stand_v in_o competition_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o ought_v to_o choose_v rather_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n glory_n then_o to_o seek_v for_o our_o own_o salvation_n yet_o god_n mercy_n be_v so_o great_a to_o we_o that_o his_o glory_n and_o our_o salvation_n be_v so_o compact_v together_o that_o we_o can_v seek_v the_o one_o but_o we_o shall_v infallible_o obtain_v the_o other_o 2._o our_o own_o duty_n must_v next_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n have_v the_o uppermost_a room_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n in_o do_v and_o suffer_v must_v be_v respect_v before_o the_o reward_n which_o god_n will_v give_v we_o his_o holy_a command_n must_v be_v a_o strong_a incitement_n to_o duty_n than_o his_o gift_n it_o be_v a_o notable_a act_n of_o a_o woman_n report_v by_o gregory_n nazianzen_n who_o carry_v fire_n in_o one_o hand_n and_o water_n in_o another_o say_v 9_o bellarmine_n say_v magis_fw-la honorificum_fw-la est_fw-la habere_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ex_fw-la merito_fw-la quam_fw-la ex_fw-la sola_fw-la donatione_fw-la tapper_n say_v absit_fw-la ut_fw-la justi_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la expectent_fw-la sicut_fw-la pauper_fw-la cleemosynam_fw-la multo_fw-la honorificentius_fw-la est_fw-la ipsos_fw-la quasi_fw-la victores_fw-la &_o triumphatores_fw-la cam_fw-la possidere_fw-la tanquam_fw-la palmam_fw-la suis_fw-la sudoribus_fw-la debitam_fw-la tapper_n tom._n 2._o act._n 9_o with_o fire_n she_o will_v burn_v the_o heaven_n with_o water_n she_o will_v drown_v the_o world_n that_o she_o may_v know_v she_o own_o heart_n whether_o she_o love_v god_n for_o god_n sake_n or_o for_o his_o reward_n 3._o we_o must_v not_o eye_v the_o reward_n qua_fw-la merces_fw-la as_o it_o be_v a_o reward_n due_a but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o free_a grace_n not_o as_o it_o be_v a_o remunerate_a act_n of_o god_n justice_n but_o as_o a_o crown_a act_n and_o fruit_n of_o free_a mercy_n then_o see_v the_o pride_n of_o papist_n who_o say_v it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o honour_n to_o have_v eternal_a life_n gratis_o 4._o we_o may_v look_v on_o the_o reward_n as_o god_n favour_n and_o as_o a_o encouragement_n he_o propose_v to_o we_o to_o move_v we_o the_o more_o swift_o to_o run_v the_o race_n that_o be_v set_v before_o we_o every_o one_o propound_v this_o to_o himself_o in_o any_o undertake_n quid_fw-la habebo_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o have_v if_o i_o do_v or_o suffer_v and_o st._n peter_n prove_v the_o question_n lord_n we_o have_v leave_v all_o and_o follow_v thou_o and_o what_o shall_v we_o receive_v it_o be_v a_o custom_n among_o great_a prince_n when_o they_o set_v upon_o any_o notable_a work_n they_o will_v encourage_v the_o undertaker_n to_o come_v to_o the_o work_n by_o the_o propound_v of_o wage_n prize_n and_o reward_n but_o we_o must_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o reward_n non_fw-la tam_fw-la ut_fw-la utile_fw-la nobis_fw-la quam_fw-la ut_fw-la bonum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la not_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o we_o and_o look_v to_o our_o own_o advantage_n as_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o reward_n itself_o 5._o we_o may_v look_v on_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n as_o a_o incitation_n to_o patience_n under_o suffering_n we_o need_v encouragement_n to_o move_v we_o to_o patience_n under_o all_o those_o misery_n and_o discouragement_n that_o attend_v our_o follow_a christ_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n to_o allay_v the_o sharpness_n of_o suffering_n propound_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o reward_n this_o cause_v moses_n to_o choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v affliction_n with_o god_n people_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o season_n esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o egypt_n for_o or_o because_o he_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n heb._n 11.25_o 26._o now_o how_o shall_v the_o consideration_n of_o this_o great_a reward_n in_o heaven_n which_o a_o christian_a shall_v receive_v for_o his_o poor_a labour_n and_o suffering_n in_o this_o world_n make_v he_o willing_a to_o die_v that_o he_o may_v receive_v his_o reward_n for_o as_o a_o weary_a traveller_n have_v even_o almost_o tire_v himself_o with_o heavy_a labour_n or_o hard_o journey_v be_v willing_a to_o go_v to_o receive_v his_o wage_n of_o his_o master_n and_o afterward_o to_o betake_v himself_o to_o his_o rest_n so_o shall_v a_o good_a christian_a that_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n keep_v the_o faith_n and_o almost_o finish_v his_o course_n be_v willing_a to_o die_v to_o
go_v to_o receive_v his_o reward_n with_o this_o consideration_n hilarion_n speak_v to_o his_o tremble_a soul_n upon_o his_o deathbed_n hilar_n hieron_n in_o vit_fw-fr hilar_n egredere_fw-la anima_fw-la cur_n time_n egredi_fw-la go_v forth_o my_o soul_n go_v forth_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o prison_n of_o pain_n into_o a_o place_n of_o pleasure_n have_v thou_o serve_v christ_n these_o seventy_o year_n and_o do_v thou_o fear_v to_o take_v thy_o wage_n now_o thou_o have_v do_v thy_o work_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v matter_n of_o shame_n to_o we_o that_o we_o have_v do_v so_o little_a work_n consider_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o reward_n as_o a_o holy_a die_a martyr_n say_v i_o be_o exceed_o grieve_v that_o be_v now_o to_o receive_v so_o great_a a_o reward_n i_o have_v do_v so_o little_a work_n true_o o_o lord_n thou_o be_v great_a above_o all_o god_n and_o great_a be_v thy_o reward_n for_o thou_o be_v not_o great_a soliloq_fw-la august_n in_o soliloq_fw-la and_o thy_o reward_n little_a thou_o be_v the_o rewarder_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n itself_o say_v st._n augustine_n sect_n vii_o show_v that_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n where_o god_n shall_v give_v his_o people_n a_o kind_a welcome_n and_o love_a entertainment_n heaven_n be_v also_o the_o place_n where_o god_n will_v most_o affectionate_o receive_v all_o his_o child_n to_o himself_o with_o much_o love_n and_o tenderness_n of_o affection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o embrace_n thou_o shall_v guide_v i_o with_o thy_o counsel_n and_o afterward_o receive_v i_o to_o glory_n psal_n 73.24_o that_o be_v thou_o shall_v receive_v i_o with_o a_o most_o vehement_a and_o ardent_a affection_n when_o the_o prodigal_a son_n be_v but_o come_v towards_o his_o father_n when_o he_o be_v yet_o afar_o off_o his_o father_n run_v towards_o he_o and_o fall_v upon_o his_o neck_n and_o kiss_v he_o now_o this_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o that_o full_a and_o glorious_a reception_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o himself_o when_o god_n shall_v make_v they_o all_o glorious_a and_o receive_v they_o without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n if_o this_o prodigal_n return_v from_o his_o harlot_n and_o come_v in_o his_o rag_n be_v thus_o acceptable_a and_o welcome_a to_o his_o father_n oh_o what_o abundance_n of_o love_n will_v god_n then_o express_v to_o his_o saint_n at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o clothe_v in_o long_o white_a robe_n and_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o perfection_n of_o glory_n mark_v what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o faithful_a servant_n well_o do_v thou_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a over_o a_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v make_v thou_o ruler_n over_o many_o thing_n enter_v thou_o into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n matth._n 25.23_o then_o will_v the_o lord_n jesus_n most_o affectionate_o say_v to_o all_o his_o servant_n enter_v my_o dear_a friend_n and_o receive_v your_o consolation_n enter_v servant_n and_o receive_v your_o wage_n enter_v my_o child_n and_o take_v possession_n of_o your_o patrimony_n and_o inheritance_n enter_v my_o brethren_n and_o receive_v your_o portion_n and_o all_o you_o that_o have_v fight_v the_o good_a fight_n and_o keep_v the_o faith_n and_o offer_v violence_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n enter_v you_o and_o take_v your_o crown_n he_o do_v not_o say_v come_v towards_o it_o and_o look_v upon_o it_o with_o a_o greedy_a desire_n and_o earnest_a longing_n after_o your_o happiness_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n take_v part_n and_o possession_n of_o it_o with_o abundance_n of_o delight_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n in_o this_o world_n be_v capable_a of_o more_o pleasure_n than_o the_o eye_n or_o ear_n yea_o then_o all_o the_o sense_n can_v bring_v in_o to_o she_o our_o soul_n can_v drink_v up_o all_o the_o pleasure_n at_o one_o draught_n it_o can_v present_o swallow_v they_o up_o but_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n do_v exceed_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n therefore_o say_v christ_n enter_v thou_o into_o thy_o master_n joy_n he_o do_v not_o say_v let_v the_o joy_n of_o thy_o master_n enter_v into_o thou_o it_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o joy_n of_o our_o glorious_a condition_n do_v infinite_o surpass_v the_o large_a capacity_n of_o our_o soul_n though_o they_o be_v stretch_v to_o the_o uttermost_a so_o at_o the_o last_o day_n christ_n will_v say_v to_o the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n receive_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 25.34_o the_o first_o word_n be_v venite_fw-la come_v it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n that_o say_v come_v come_v to_o i_o my_o spouse_n that_o where_o the_o husband_n be_v there_o the_o bride_n the_o lamb_n wife_n may_v be_v that_o where_o the_o head_n be_v there_o the_o member_n may_v be_v where_o the_o father_n be_v there_o the_o child_n may_v be_v where_o the_o master_n be_v there_o the_o servant_n may_v be_v where_o the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v there_o his_o fellow-soldier_n may_v be_v when_o christ_n be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n he_o cheer_v up_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n with_o these_o consolatory_a word_n let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o john_n 14.1_o 2._o see_v how_o much_o affection_n christ_n express_v in_o these_o word_n if_o christ_n say_v when_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n come_v to_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v weary_a and_o heavy_a lade_v and_o i_o will_v ease_v you_o take_v my_o yoke_n upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n matth._n 11.28_o 29._o then_o much_o more_o will_v he_o retain_v the_o same_o sweetness_n of_o affection_n when_o he_o come_v to_o sit_v down_o in_o his_o judgment-seat_n christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o servant_n among_o his_o people_n luke_o 22.27_o i_o be_o among_o you_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v he_o condescend_v to_o serve_v his_o people_n he_o go_v to_o heaven_n in_o person_n to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o they_o and_o he_o will_v come_v again_o in_o person_n to_o receive_v they_o thither_o true_a it_o be_v he_o will_v do_v it_o with_o a_o glorious_a train_n of_o angel_n yet_o he_o will_v come_v himself_o and_o take_v they_o home_o to_o his_o father_n house_n that_o where_o he_o be_v they_o may_v be_v also_o and_o then_o will_v he_o receive_v they_o with_o much_o affection_n come_v my_o love_n my_o dove_n my_o spouse_n my_o undefiled_a where_o have_v thou_o be_v so_o long_o all_o this_o while_n out_o of_o my_o presence_n come_v you_o into_o my_o bosom_n which_o be_v now_o wide_o open_a ready_a to_o receive_v you_o if_o jacob_n and_o joseph_n meeting_n be_v so_o unexpressible_o comfortable_a when_o they_o have_v think_v never_o to_o have_v see_v the_o face_n of_o each_o other_o after_o so_o long_a a_o distance_n oh_o what_o shall_v the_o joy_n of_o that_o last_o day_n be_v and_o how_o shall_v those_o noble_a soul_n rejoice_v yea_o leap_v for_o joy_n to_o who_o these_o soul-ravishing_a word_n be_v speak_v come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n all_o the_o music_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n will_v not_o so_o ravish_v they_o as_o this_o voice_n will_v do_v now_o though_o they_o be_v the_o outcast_n of_o the_o world_n heaven_n gate_n shall_v be_v set_v wide_o open_a for_o their_o reception_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n will_v bid_v they_o come_v and_o welcome_a the_o spirit_n and_o the_o bride_n say_v come_v etc._n etc._n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n the_o world_n have_v curse_v you_o but_o god_n have_v bless_v you_o yea_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v bless_v come_v you_o and_o inherit_v a_o kingdom_n i_o have_v heretofore_o tell_v you_o of_o a_o kingdom_n promise_v you_o a_o kingdom_n you_o have_v often_o pray_v for_o lord_n let_v thy_o kingdom_n come_v come_v now_o my_o dear_a friend_n i_o be_o come_v to_o put_v you_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o that_o kingdom_n i_o will_v make_v you_o all_o king_n and_o you_o shall_v reign_v with_o i_o for_o ever_o great_a reason_n there_o be_v for_o we_o to_o think_v that_o god_n will_v take_v home_o all_o his_o people_n to_o himself_o with_o abundance_n of_o affection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o be_v the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a and_o will_v not_o our_o heavenly_a father_n receive_v all_o his_o son_n and_o daughter_n to_o glory_n with_o a_o most_o
ever_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n in_o all_o his_o working_n to_o eternity_n what_o a_o ravish_a thing_n will_v it_o have_v be_v beatitud_n burr_n in_o beatitud_n if_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v have_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o there_o to_o have_v see_v what_o god_n have_v do_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o day_n but_o when_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n as_o it_o will_v short_o be_v god_n and_o his_o saint_n will_v then_o remain_v everlasting_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o with_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v there_o where_o they_o shall_v see_v what_o god_n will_v do_v for_o ever_o 5._o they_o shall_v see_v the_o infinite_a love_n of_o the_o infinite_a god_n of_o which_o now_o they_o have_v but_o a_o taste_n they_o shall_v then_o clear_o understand_v that_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n out_o of_o which_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o holiness_n eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n that_o love_n out_o of_o which_o christ_n himself_o as_o a_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n issue_v and_o out_o of_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v give_v they_o that_o appertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n that_o love_n which_o prevent_v they_o in_o their_o lose_a condition_n which_o turn_v the_o eye_n of_o god_n compassion_n towards_o they_o when_o they_o lie_v in_o their_o blood_n that_o love_n which_o issue_v out_o a_o pardon_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n from_o the_o court_n of_o mercy_n which_o lengthen_v out_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o when_o they_o linger_v in_o their_o sin_n then_o shall_v they_o know_v full_o where_o this_o love_n be_v breed_v and_o that_o none_o but_o the_o eternal_a love_n and_o delight_n of_o the_o father_n can_v have_v out_v so_o much_o love_n then_o shall_v they_o see_v themselves_o over_o head_n and_o ear_n drown_v in_o many_o obligation_n to_o his_o infinite_a love_n 6._o they_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o the_o fountain_n of_o light_n and_o wisdom_n as_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n as_o the_o father_n of_o light_n in_o who_o light_n themselves_o see_v light_a from_o who_o face_n all_o those_o beam_n do_v shine_v whereby_o their_o soul_n be_v fill_v with_o heavenly_a wisdom_n they_o shall_v see_v clear_o that_o god_n be_v light_n fill_v heaven_n with_o his_o brightness_n and_o glory_n and_o fix_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n upon_o he_o as_o a_o object_n infinite_a altogether_o lightsome_a and_o lovely_a they_o shall_v behold_v that_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o great_a piece_n of_o workmanship_n have_v nothing_o but_o nothing_o for_o its_o materia_fw-la how_o all_o the_o different_a part_n whereof_o it_o be_v compose_v have_v the_o same_o original_n and_o how_o this_o vacuum_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n bring_v forth_o the_o heaven_n with_o their_o constellation_n the_o earth_n with_o all_o its_o field_n the_o sea_n with_o all_o its_o rock_n how_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v create_v in_o a_o instant_n though_o there_o go_v six_o day_n to_o their_o disposal_n the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v also_o understand_v that_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o in_o all_o age_n have_v govern_v the_o world_n and_o direct_v all_o creature_n to_o their_o course_n and_o motion_n how_o this_o admirable_a work_n have_v endure_v numberless_a age_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o suffer_v that_o soon_o to_o perish_v which_o she_o be_v not_o long_o in_o form_v then_o shall_v the_o mystery_n of_o providence_n be_v full_o open_v and_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o birth_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o providence_n which_o on_o earth_n be_v invisible_a to_o we_o then_o shall_v we_o understand_v all_o the_o way_n circuit_n line_n turn_n of_o providence_n and_o see_v how_o christ_n have_v steer_v the_o helm_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n when_o mean_n have_v fail_v and_o man_n and_o time_n have_v change_v they_o shall_v likewise_o know_v that_o wisdom_n that_o have_v order_v the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o devil_n to_o holy_a end_n never_o intend_v by_o the_o actor_n which_o have_v overreach_v the_o crafty_a device_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o his_o seed_n they_o shall_v likewise_o behold_v that_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o contrive_v the_o whole_a method_n of_o man_n redemption_n and_o salvation_n the_o very_a masterpiece_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n that_o wisdom_n that_o have_v give_v light_a to_o the_o blind_a wisdom_n to_o the_o foolish_a and_o abundance_n of_o light_n to_o those_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n and_o which_o make_v those_o that_o be_v darkness_n to_o become_v light_n in_o the_o lord_n this_o shall_v be_v matter_n of_o admiration_n to_o man_n and_o angel_n that_o the_o great_a god_n shall_v condescend_v to_o look_v on_o such_o vile_a sinner_n so_o far_o below_o the_o free_a love_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o most_o high_a then_o shall_v the_o saint_n understand_v all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v themselves_o from_o all_o eternity_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v not_o only_o see_v what_o god_n himself_o be_v but_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o heart_n his_o will_n and_o all_o his_o way_n and_o glorious_a contrivance_n for_o their_o salvation_n 7._o they_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o that_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o they_o shall_v exact_o discern_v how_o every_o promise_n of_o he_o every_o pprophecy_n deliver_v by_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o church_n and_o record_v in_o his_o word_n be_v full_o accomplish_v not_o one_o fail_v or_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o god_n promise_v or_o bind_v himself_o by_o covenant_n to_o perform_v though_o it_o seem_v difficult_a or_o long_o before_o it_o be_v fulfil_v yet_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v at_o last_o in_o its_o appoint_a time_n oh_o the_o sweet_a satisfaction_n which_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v find_v in_o the_o full_a contemplation_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n every_o way_n manifest_v and_o so_o glorious_o verify_v in_o and_o upon_o themselves_o in_o keep_v they_o by_o his_o power_n unto_o salvation_n in_o preserve_v they_o to_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n in_o guide_v they_o by_o his_o counsel_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o glory_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o all_o the_o art_n malice_n skill_n and_o power_n of_o man_n and_o devil_n can_v never_o frustrate_v nor_o make_v void_a the_o least_o tittle_n of_o god_n sacred_a truth_n 8._o they_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o a_o god_n infinite_a in_o holiness_n of_o perfect_a purity_n they_o shall_v with_o great_a delight_n look_v direct_o into_o that_o overflow_a fountain_n of_o holiness_n which_o have_v stream_v into_o so_o many_o thousand_o soul_n which_o have_v wash_v so_o many_o unclean_a heart_n from_o their_o filthiness_n which_o fill_v all_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n with_o perfect_a holiness_n then_o shall_v they_o behold_v those_o fair_a hand_n as_o i_o may_v speak_v that_o stoop_v to_o wash_v such_o black-skinned_n and_o defile_v sinner_n and_o purge_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o zion_n if_o the_o egyptian_n for_o many_o age_n have_v have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o find_v out_o the_o fountain_n of_o that_o river_n nilus_n which_o by_o his_o yearly_a inundation_n water_v the_o land_n in_o that_o hot_a climate_n have_v no_o shower_n of_o rain_n and_o make_v it_o abundant_o fruitful_a oh_o then_o how_o shall_v glorify_a soul_n rejoice_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o springhead_n of_o holiness_n which_o have_v water_v so_o many_o barren_a soul_n and_o make_v they_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n 9_o they_o shall_v clear_o see_v he_o as_o a_o all-sufficient_a god_n they_o shall_v see_v that_o rich_a treasury_n open_v out_o of_o which_o all_o that_o good_a be_v give_v which_o be_v receive_v by_o any_o or_o all_o the_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o lord_n by_o many_o notable_a instance_n of_o his_o own_o glorious_a work_n job_n 38.22_o convince_a job_n of_o ignorance_n and_o pose_v he_o by_o a_o multitude_n of_o interrogation_n among_o the_o rest_n say_v he_o have_v thou_o enter_v into_o the_o treasure_n of_o snow_n or_o have_v thou_o see_v the_o treasure_n of_o hail_n but_o in_o that_o state_n of_o glory_n not_o only_o this_o holy_a man_n but_o every_o one_o of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o view_v the_o treasure_n of_o god_n all-sufficiency_n out_o of_o which_o all_o good_a thing_n concern_v this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v have_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v dispense_v and_o distribute_v among_o the_o creature_n life_n breath_n all_o thing_n grace_n and_o glory_n grace_n of_o justification_n grace_n of_o
torment_n have_v not_o power_n to_o destroy_v our_o soul_n they_o can_v never_o have_v power_n to_o deprive_v we_o of_o heaven_n 2._o that_o which_o can_v never_o separate_v we_o from_o god_n can_v never_o shut_v we_o out_o of_o heaven_n let_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n be_v we_o and_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o heaven_n be_v we_o our_o sin_n may_v separate_v we_o from_o god_n isa_n 59.2_o but_o our_o suffering_n our_o affliction_n shall_v never_o separate_v we_o from_o he_o you_o may_v remember_v that_o heroical_a challenge_n of_o s._n paul_n rom._n 8.35_o what_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o that_o challenge_n 1._o that_o the_o godly_a be_v subject_a to_o all_o those_o evil_n that_o the_o apostle_n there_o reckon_v up_o he_o reckon_v up_o seven_o in_o all_o and_o still_o that_o which_o come_v after_o aggravate_v that_o which_o go_v before_o tribulation_n or_o trouble_n that_o be_v the_o first_o but_o to_o be_v in_o trouble_n and_o in_o anguish_n too_o in_o anguish_n to_o be_v drive_v into_o persecution_n and_o banishment_n in_o banishment_n to_o suffer_v hunger_n and_o nakedness_n with_o these_o to_o be_v in_o continual_a peril_n and_o danger_n after_o all_o to_o die_v violent_o by_o the_o sword_n these_o be_v great_a evil_n all_o of_o they_o and_o all_o of_o they_o exceed_v one_o another_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o godly_a be_v subject_a to_o all_o of_o they_o 2._o that_o in_o these_o evil_n the_o main_a end_n that_o the_o devil_n aim_v at_o be_v to_o separate_v god_n from_o we_o and_o we_o from_o god_n as_o may_v plain_o be_v see_v in_o job_n case_n where_o the_o devil_n lay_v all_o the_o load_n he_o can_v upon_o he_o and_o all_o to_o set_v god_n and_o he_o at_o variance_n to_o make_v he_o to_o blaspheme_v god_n and_o god_n to_o forsake_v he_o 3._o that_o yet_o the_o anchor_n of_o our_o safety_n be_v so_o firm_o cast_v as_o that_o no_o such_o tempest_n as_o these_o shall_v ever_o cause_v such_o a_o shipwreck_n in_o vain_a shall_v the_o devil_n ever_o labour_v by_o any_o of_o these_o cord_n to_o pull_v god_n and_o we_o asunder_o they_o shall_v not_o make_v the_o faithful_a for_o their_o part_n to_o shrink_v any_o whit_n from_o he_o nay_o they_o will_v rather_o stick_v the_o close_o to_o he_o as_o wind_n put_v not_o out_o the_o fire_n but_o rather_o kindle_v it_o so_o that_o same_o wind_n of_o affliction_n which_o be_v send_v out_o to_o blow_v upon_o they_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o put_v out_o but_o rather_o to_o kindle_v the_o fire_n of_o their_o love_n god_n on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o his_o part_n will_v never_o the_o soon_o forsake_v they_o nay_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o forsake_v his_o child_n in_o affliction_n as_o he_o do_v then_o draw_v the_o near_a to_o they_o perhaps_o they_o be_v not_o always_o so_o sensible_a of_o his_o presence_n but_o afraid_a that_o he_o hide_v his_o face_n away_o yet_o certain_a it_o be_v he_o be_v then_o ever_o at_o hand_n and_o near_o unto_o they_o ready_a to_o do_v by_o they_o as_o christ_n do_v by_o peter_n in_o the_o storm_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o sink_v to_o put_v his_o hand_n under_o they_o and_o to_o save_v they_o from_o drown_v david_n say_v god_n have_v compassion_n on_o we_o as_o a_o father_n have_v compassion_n on_o his_o child_n now_o father_n have_v most_o compassion_n on_o their_o child_n when_o they_o see_v they_o in_o most_o trouble_n and_o distress_n if_o natural_a father_n have_v so_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n can_v then_o be_v void_a of_o the_o bowel_n of_o affection_n when_o he_o see_v we_o in_o affliction_n and_o distress_n god_n do_v then_o pity_v we_o and_o those_o be_v infallible_a argument_n of_o his_o love_n towards_o we_o now_o if_o trouble_v and_o affliction_n can_v separate_v god_n love_n from_o we_o sure_o they_o can_v shut_v up_o god_n kingdom_n against_o we_o but_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o hardship_n they_o make_v we_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o time_n yet_o when_o we_o have_v be_v try_v we_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n chap._n xxxi_o set_v down_o a_o cordial_a to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n and_o a_o preparative_a to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o a_o twofold_a use_n may_v be_v make_v of_o what_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n and_o it_o concern_v they_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n and_o they_o that_o be_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n a_o cordial_a of_o unspeakable_a comfort_n for_o what_o can_v more_o comfort_v a_o afflict_a soul_n when_o he_o see_v how_o all_o earthly_a joy_n have_v forsake_v he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v every_o day_n fain_o to_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o sorrow_n and_o to_o mingle_v his_o drink_n with_o tear_n what_o can_v more_o comfort_v he_o than_o to_o know_v and_o to_o be_v assure_v that_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o be_v never_o the_o far_o from_o god_n never_o the_o far_o from_o heaven_n the_o world_n pour_v contempt_n upon_o he_o but_o god_n have_v not_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o favour_n his_o outward_a man_n peradventure_o be_v weaken_v and_o decay_a but_o his_o inner_a man_n be_v safe_a and_o untouched_a earth_n have_v deny_v he_o peace_n and_o comfort_n but_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o he_o a_o crown_n of_o blessedness_n this_o be_v it_o that_o give_v job_n comfort_n and_o make_v he_o victor_n in_o stercore_fw-la make_v he_o sing_v song_n of_o triumph_n even_o when_o he_o be_v sit_v on_o the_o dunghill_n his_o substance_n be_v go_v his_o child_n be_v slay_v his_o wife_n tempt_v he_o his_o servant_n scorn_v he_o his_o enemy_n insult_v on_o he_o his_o friend_n forsake_v he_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o scourge_n to_o he_o god_n himself_o seem_v to_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o he_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o say_v he_o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o i_o shall_v see_v he_o at_o the_o last_o day_n there_o be_v no_o comfort_n in_o the_o world_n comparable_a to_o this_o so_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o come_v to_o heaven_n at_o the_o last_o no_o matter_n though_o we_o go_v thither_o in_o a_o a_o whirlwind_n and_o a_o fire_n no_o matter_n whether_o a_o smooth_a way_n or_o a_o rugged_a better_a go_v a_o fowl_n way_n to_o a_o banquet_n than_o a_o fair_a way_n to_o a_o gibbet_n the_o reward_n we_o look_v for_o in_o heaven_n be_v sometime_o compare_v to_o a_o reap_v to_o a_o harvest_n now_o you_o know_v when_o the_o corn_n be_v sow_o once_o before_o we_o come_v to_o reap_v it_o it_o suffer_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o hard_a weather_n many_o dash_a rain_n many_o nip_a frost_n many_o bite_a wind_n yet_o none_o of_o all_o these_o do_v hinder_v the_o harvest_n they_o make_v the_o corn_n never_o the_o worse_o either_o for_o ripen_v or_o reap_v in_o due_a season_n we_o shall_v reap_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v notwithstanding_o all_o these_o affliction_n be_v to_o we_o while_o we_o be_v live_v in_o the_o world_n as_o hard_a weather_n to_o the_o corn_n while_o it_o be_v grow_v in_o the_o field_n they_o nip_v we_o they_o pinch_v we_o they_o blow_v cold_a they_o beat_v hard_o upon_o we_o yet_o they_o shall_v not_o spoil_v we_o of_o the_o harvest_n we_o look_v for_o they_o shall_v not_o bereave_v we_o of_o the_o least_o of_o those_o sheaf_n of_o joy_n that_o lie_v a_o ripen_n for_o we_o but_o in_o due_a season_n we_o shall_v reap_v the_o full_a crop_n into_o our_o garner_n let_v this_o then_o be_v a_o cordial_a to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n let_v it_o be_v also_o a_o preparative_n for_o those_o that_o be_v not_o prepare_v yourselves_o o_o christian_n for_o the_o patient_a bear_n of_o all_o trial_n that_o god_n shall_v send_v upon_o you_o by_o lay_v up_o before_o hand_n this_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n that_o no_o trial_n shall_v rob_v you_o of_o your_o crown_n object_n peradventure_o you_o will_v object_v that_o yet_o they_o have_v do_v so_o by_o some_o extremity_n of_o affliction_n have_v drive_v they_o into_o extremity_n of_o despair_n so_o instead_o of_o receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n they_o have_v cause_v their_o portion_n in_o the_o second_o death_n resp_n affliction_n have_v not_o cause_v this_o but_o the_o ill_a use_n that_o have_v be_v make_v of_o affliction_n we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o affliction_n as_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o prosperity_n they_o be_v either_o of_o they_o good_a or_o evil_n according_a to_o the_o good_a or_o evil_a use_n that_o be_v make_v of_o they_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o some_o that_o be_v in_o prosperity_n shall_v come_v to_o heaven_n yet_o their_o prosperity_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n
for_o one_o of_o fabritius_n it_o be_v all_o speak_v that_o you_o may_v soon_o have_v turn_v the_o sun_n out_o of_o his_o course_n than_o he_o from_o his_o integrity_n and_o uprightness_n yet_o the_o best_a of_o they_o be_v but_o guild_v potsherd_n and_o the_o fair_a virtue_n they_o talk_v of_o be_v but_o paint_a rag_n they_o never_o know_v what_o god_n or_o christ_n be_v what_o heaven_n or_o hell_n be_v blessedness_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o every_o man_n have_v in_o his_o eye_n it_o be_v the_o mark_n that_o every_o one_o shoot_v at_o a_o thing_n that_o every_o man_n desire_v blessedness_n be_v that_o estate_n that_o every_o man_n covet_v &_o boni_fw-la &_o mali_fw-la both_o good_a and_o bad_a man_n say_v s._n augustine_n 1_o august_n in_o psal_n 119._o serm._n 1_o good_a man_n do_v therefore_o labour_v to_o be_v good_a yet_o that_o be_v no_o wonder_n but_o even_o wicked_a man_n also_o do_v therefore_o labour_v to_o be_v wicked_a that_o they_o may_v be_v happy_a there_o be_v some_o appearance_n of_o good_a in_o it_o unto_o they_o they_o aim_v at_o a_o kind_n of_o blessedness_n even_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o wickedness_n and_o many_o there_o be_v that_o have_v heaven_n and_o happiness_n at_o their_o tongue_n end_n that_o have_v the_o earth_n continual_o at_o their_o finger_n end_n o_o curas_fw-la hominum_fw-la o_o quantum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la inane_fw-la alas_o man_n care_n how_o full_a of_o pain_n alas_o man_n way_n how_o vile_a and_o vain_a but_o though_o blessedness_n be_v in_o every_o man_n heart_n yet_o many_o man_n be_v stranger_n to_o it_o many_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o eye_n but_o of_o blessedness_n we_o may_v say_v eye_n have_v not_o see_v it_o other_o comfort_n and_o good_a thing_n be_v take_v in_o by_o the_o ear_n but_o we_o may_v say_v of_o blessedness_n ear_n have_v not_o hear_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v how_o great_a that_o good_a be_v that_o be_v comprise_v in_o blessedness_n the_o bless_a man_n be_v define_v by_o some_o to_o be_v one_o qui_fw-la habet_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la vult_fw-la &_o nihil_fw-la patitur_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la that_o have_v every_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v and_o suffer_v nothing_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o estate_n to_o be_v consider_v privative_o and_o positive_o privative_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o must_v be_v want_v positive_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o must_v be_v have_v 1._o there_o must_v be_v a_o absence_n of_o all_o that_o be_v evil_a whatsoever_o be_v in_o any_o degree_n evil_a or_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n in_o his_o own_o understanding_n do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v evil_a or_o conceit_n to_o be_v evil_a that_o he_o must_v want_v and_o be_v without_o for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o evil_n at_o all_o that_o he_o either_o feel_v or_o fear_v so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o that_o estate_n he_o can_v be_v in_o a_o bless_a estate_n yea_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o imaginary_a evil_n his_o own_o fear_n imagination_n and_o apprehension_n be_v to_o he_o a_o kind_n of_o unhappiness_n while_o man_n be_v under_o the_o apprehension_n fear_n or_o imagination_n of_o any_o evil_n he_o be_v vex_v disquiet_v torment_v and_o can_v be_v true_o happy_a 2._o on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o there_o must_v be_v a_o absence_n of_o all_o that_o be_v evil_a so_o there_o must_v be_v a_o affluence_n of_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v good_a every_o good_a thing_n the_o heart_n can_v wish_v a_o man_n must_v enjoy_v for_o look_v how_o much_o of_o any_o good_a thing_n he_o want_v so_o much_o of_o his_o blessedness_n he_o want_v therefore_o the_o word_n in_o the_o hebrew_n that_o signify_v blessedness_n be_v a_o plural_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o never_o find_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n some_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o hoc_fw-la aut_fw-la illud_fw-la unum_fw-la aut_fw-la aliud_fw-la it_o be_v not_o this_o or_o that_o one_o or_o the_o other_o good_a thing_n that_o can_v make_v a_o man_n estate_n bless_v but_o he_o that_o will_v be_v in_o a_o bless_a estate_n mus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la bonis_fw-la affluere_fw-la abound_v with_o all_o good_a thing_n and_o no_o good_a that_o he_o can_v desire_v must_v be_v want_v to_o he_o blessedness_n be_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o good_a correspondent_a to_o all_o the_o desire_n of_o a_o christian_a it_o be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o last_o good_a of_o a_o christian_a the_o first_o and_o last_o of_o thing_n to_o be_v desire_v the_o first_o for_o excellency_n the_o last_o for_o enjoyment_n it_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o good_a when_o blessedness_n come_v all_o good_a come_v along_o with_o it_o it_o comprehend_v all_o good_a whatsoever_o moreover_o blessedness_n be_v the_o crown_n and_o remuneration_n of_o all_o good_a though_o god_n do_v endue_v man_n with_o several_a gift_n and_o grace_n and_o albeit_o as_o there_o be_v several_a gift_n and_o employment_n of_o man_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v several_a reward_n yet_o the_o reward_n of_o all_o be_v but_o one_o blessedness_n and_o hereunto_o i_o will_v add_v one_o thing_n more_o viz._n that_o blessedness_n have_v ever_o perpetuity_n annex_v to_o it_o and_o that_o same_o perpetuity_n of_o happiness_n add_v all_o in_o all_o to_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o dubitatur_fw-la non_fw-fr est_fw-fr ista_fw-la beatitudo_fw-la de_fw-la cujus_fw-la aeternitate_fw-la dubitatur_fw-la for_o there_o be_v no_o perfection_n of_o felicity_n where_o there_o be_v no_o assurance_n of_o perpetuity_n which_o perpetuity_n do_v neither_o depend_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o nor_o proceed_v from_o any_o natural_a necessity_n that_o our_o soul_n shall_v so_o exercise_v themselves_o for_o ever_o in_o behold_v and_o love_a god_n but_o from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o do_v free_o perfect_v our_o nature_n in_o so_o high_a a_o degree_n and_o continue_v it_o so_o perfect_v from_o hence_o this_o conclusion_n will_v follow_v that_o the_o bless_a estate_n be_v such_o a_o estate_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attain_v in_o this_o life_n the_o blessedness_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n be_v but_o like_o the_o gird_v on_o of_o the_o sword_n before_o the_o fight_n of_o the_o battle_n till_o the_o battle_n be_v fight_v the_o victory_n can_v be_v judge_v nor_o the_o crown_n give_v alas_o in_o this_o life_n there_o be_v many_o good_a thing_n want_v to_o we_o that_o our_o soul_n do_v desire_n many_o evil_n present_v with_o we_o from_o which_o we_o will_v fain_o be_v deliver_v we_o have_v now_o health_n and_o anon_o sickness_n now_o plenty_n anon_o want_v now_o peace_n anon_o trouble_n but_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v all_o joy_n and_o no_o sorrow_n in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v reciprocal_a vicissitude_n of_o joy_n and_o sorrow_n joy_n and_o sorrow_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o interchange_a sail_n of_o the_o world_n windmill_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o hand_n of_o death_n that_o must_v open_v the_o door_n for_o we_o to_o a_o happy_a life_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o poet._n ultima_fw-la semper_fw-la expectanda_fw-la dies_fw-la homini_fw-la dicique_fw-la beatus_fw-la ante_fw-la obitum_fw-la nemo_fw-la supremaque_fw-la funera_fw-la debet_fw-la 3._o ou._n m●●_n lib._n 3._o our_o life_n last_o day_n must_v be_v expect_v when_o by_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v happy_a not_o till_o then_o thus_o epiphanius_n 6●_n epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 6●_n bring_v in_o methodius_n dispute_v against_o proclus_n the_o originist_n that_o god_n as_o the_o true_a physician_n have_v appoint_v death_n as_o a_o medicinable_a purgation_n for_o the_o utter_a root_n out_o and_o put_v away_o of_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v happy_a and_o unblameable_a and_o that_o as_o a_o goodly_a golden_a image_n sightly_o and_o seemly_o in_o all_o part_n if_o it_o be_v break_v and_o deface_v by_o any_o mean_n must_v be_v new_a cast_n and_o frame_v again_o for_o the_o take_v away_o the_o blemish_n and_o disgrace_n of_o it_o even_o so_o man_n the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v maim_v and_o disgrace_v by_o sin_n for_o the_o put_v away_o these_o blemish_n and_o the_o repair_v his_o ruin_n and_o decay_n must_v by_o death_n be_v dissolve_v into_o the_o earth_n thence_o to_o be_v raise_v up_o again_o in_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n and_o blessedness_n how_o shall_v the_o consideration_n hereof_o wean_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o life_n why_o shall_v our_o love_n be_v there_o set_v where_o no_o blessedness_n be_v to_o be_v have_v the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n quae_fw-la possessa_fw-la onerant_fw-la amata_fw-la inquinant_fw-la amissa_fw-la cruciant_fw-la as_o bernard_n speak_v thing_n which_o while_o we_o possess_v they_o burden_n we_o while_o we_o love_v they_o defile_v we_o
be_v it_o speak_v but_o of_o the_o saint_n who_o suffer_v by_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v member_n of_o christ_n and_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o of_o those_o suffering_n wherein_o they_o suffer_v with_o christ_n of_o which_o st._n ambrose_n 22._o ambrose_n epist_n 22._o say_v to_o show_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n here_o in_o hand_n he_o be_v altogether_o glorify_v who_o in_o suffer_v for_o he_o suffer_v with_o he_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v exhort_v we_o to_o suffering_n he_o add_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o suffer_v be_v too_o little_a and_o unworthy_a that_o for_o the_o pain_n thereof_o so_o great_a reward_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v return_v to_o we_o chap._n iii_o sect._n 1_o a_o description_n of_o glory_n my_o purpose_n from_o this_o text_n god_n assist_v i_o shall_v be_v to_o discourse_v at_o large_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n that_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v up_o for_o his_o saint_n and_o with_o which_o he_o will_v crown_v they_o hereafter_o albeit_o in_o this_o world_n they_o be_v debase_v vilify_v and_o put_v to_o shame_n yet_o hereafter_o they_o shall_v be_v glorify_v here_o in_o the_o first_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v what_o glory_n be_v glory_n be_v what_o glory_n be_v ta●●●_n proper_o do_v note_n unto_o we_o that_o high_a esteem_n which_o any_o have_v of_o some_o special_a worth_n and_o excellency_n in_o other_o or_o of_o some_o notable_a act_n wrought_v by_o other_o so_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v that_o high_a esteem_n and_o account_v which_o man_n and_o angel_n do_v in_o their_o apprehension_n entertain_v of_o the_o excellency_n majesty_n goodness_n power_n perfection_n and_o alsufficiency_n of_o god_n especial_o that_o which_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n do_v conceive_v of_o he_o who_o apprehension_n of_o god_n excellency_n and_o infinite_a perfection_n be_v mix_v with_o a_o entire_a love_n of_o god_n when_o we_o discern_v a_o special_a excellency_n in_o a_o person_n who_o we_o entire_o love_v this_o will_v enlarge_v our_o apprehension_n in_o discern_v the_o excellency_n of_o such_o a_o person_n he_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n sincere_o will_v see_v more_o glorious_a excellency_n than_o another_o yet_o even_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n can_v so_o shut_v their_o eye_n but_o that_o many_o of_o they_o even_o against_o their_o will_n shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a esteem_n of_o the_o lord_n excellency_n 9.27_o exod._n 9.27_o pharaoh_n can_v not_o but_o discern_v a_o glorious_a excellency_n of_o power_n and_o justice_n in_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o see_v his_o hand_n so_o heavy_a and_o his_o stroke_n so_o multiply_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o people_n the_o malignity_n of_o their_o spirit_n against_o the_o lord_n do_v eclipse_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n shine_v unto_o they_o but_o yet_o it_o can_v altogether_o darken_v it_o the_o utter_a darkness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bottomless_a pit●_n can_v hinder_v but_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o justice_n shall_v appear_v to_o the_o devil_n himself_o and_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o entertain_v a_o high_a esteem_n of_o his_o excellency_n and_o perfection_n although_o there_o do_v not_o one_o glimpse_n of_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n shine_v there_o so_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n proper_o be_v that_o high_a esteem_n which_o other_o have_v of_o the_o excellency_n which_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o they_o and_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o they_o but_o i_o take_v it_o it_o be_v more_o often_o use_v in_o scripture_n for_o such_o glorious_a excellency_n as_o do_v deserve_v or_o cause_v such_o a_o high_a esteem_n of_o those_o in_o who_o they_o be_v so_o of_o st._n stephen_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n act._n 7.25_o that_o be_v a_o glorious_a brightness_n and_o representation_n of_o god_n presence_n which_o can_v not_o but_o cause_v a_o high_a and_o glorious_a esteem_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o majesty_n in_o all_o beholder_n there_o be_v glorious_a excellency_n which_o god_n in_o this_o life_n have_v begin_v in_o his_o child_n in_o which_o sense_n glory_n be_v take_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v proper_o call_v glory_n for_o that_o which_o produce_v glory_n or_o cause_v a_o high_a esteem_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n of_o other_o so_o that_o this_o be_v glory_n radical_o whereas_o a_o high_a esteem_n follow_v hereupon_o be_v glory_n formal_o and_o proper_o now_o then_o take_v glory_n in_o this_o sense_n for_o any_o glorious_a excellency_n in_o any_o person_n we_o must_v distinguish_v a_o main_a and_o mighty_a difference_n between_o the_o fullness_n of_o glorious_a excellency_n which_o be_v original_o in_o the_o creator_n and_o that_o degree_n of_o glorious_a excellency_n which_o be_v derive_v to_o the_o creature_n his_o glory_n be_v his_o own_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v not_o their_o own_o but_o borrow_v it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o they_o now_o this_o glory_n which_o the_o god_n of_o all_o glory_n have_v put_v upon_o the_o creature_n be_v of_o divers_a kind_n as_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o apostle_n word_n 1_o cor._n 15.40_o 41._o the_o glory_n of_o the_o celestial_a be_v one_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a be_v another_o there_o be_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o another_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o another_o of_o the_o star_n for_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n so_o there_o be_v a_o glory_n in_o unreasonable_a and_o a_o glory_n in_o reasonable_a and_o intellectual_a creature_n 1._o in_o unreasonable_a there_o be_v a_o glorious_a excellency_n splendour_n and_o brightness_n put_v upon_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n as_o in_o that_o former_a place_n the_o very_a flower_n of_o the_o field_n have_v some_o glimpse_n of_o glory_n put_v upon_o they_o behold_v the_o lily_n of_o the_o field_n say_v our_o saviour_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o even_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n be_v not_o clothe_v like_o one_o of_o they_o matth._n 6._o there_o be_v more_o glory_n in_o the_o native_a beauty_n of_o a_o lily_n than_o in_o all_o the_o lustre_n which_o art_n and_o cost_n be_v able_a to_o weave_v into_o king_n solomon_n rich_a and_o royal_a robe_n so_o those_o passage_n job_n 39.19_o 20._o which_o the_o lord_n utter_v with_o his_o own_o mouth_n for_o job_n conviction_n and_o humiliation_n do_v serve_v to_o show_v some_o degree_n of_o glory_n and_o excellency_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v adorn_v and_o beautify_v divers_a of_o the_o bruit_n creature_n as_o among_o other_o the_o horse_n where_o you_o must_v conceive_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o prime_a one_o for_o shape_n and_o spirit_n have_v thou_o give_v the_o horse_n strength_n have_v thou_o clothe_v his_o neck_n with_o thunder_n can_v thou_o make_v he_o afraid_a as_o a_o grasshopper_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o nostril_n be_v terrible_a he_o paw_v in_o the_o valley_n and_o rejoice_v in_o his_o strength_n he_o go_v on_o to_o meet_v the_o arm_a man_n he_o mock_v ●t_a fear_n and_o be_v not_o affright_v neither_o turn_v back_o from_o the_o sword_n the_o quiver_n rattle_v against_o he_o the_o glitter_a spear_n and_o the_o shield_n etc._n etc._n now_o as_o the_o sun_n shine_v upon_o the_o earth_n or_o upon_o a_o wall_n or_o the_o like_a make_v it_o shine_v and_o glister_n and_o communicate_v its_o glory_n to_o it_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n we_o know_v and_o not_o of_o the_o wall_n so_o these_o glorious_a excellency_n in_o any_o degree_n appear_v in_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o the_o creature_n 2._o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v a_o glory_n of_o reasonable_a or_o intellectual_a creature_n and_o first_o of_o angel_n who_o be_v full_a of_o glorious_a excellency_n second_o of_o man_n who_o may_v have_v glorious_a excellency_n in_o they_o of_o divers_a kind_n natural_a civil_a spiritual_a natural_a viz._n a_o eminency_n of_o endowment_n in_o body_n and_o mind_n civil_a extraordinary_a ability_n for_o manage_v of_o public_a affair_n in_o peace_n and_o war_n and_o notable_a achievement_n or_o performance_n of_o this_o kind_n such_o eminency_n be_v in_o saul_n nabuchadnezzar_n alexander_n the_o great_a julius_n caesar_n and_o these_o thing_n make_v they_o glorious_a in_o a_o degree_n but_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o another_o case_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a be_v one_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o celestial_a be_v another_o so_o all_o this_o be_v but_o terrestrial_a glory_n it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o celestial_a glory_n which_o here_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o special_a eminency_n and_o glorious_a excellency_n in_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n bestow_v upon_o
be_v interest_v that_o look_n as_o the_o creature_n be_v say_v verse_n 19_o earnesty_n to_o expect_v they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v put_v forth_o their_o head_n to_o look_v for_o the_o glorious_a appear_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o all_o the_o saint_n do_v earnest_o expect_v their_o future_a promise_a glory_n say_v parisiensis_fw-la parisiens_fw-la guilielm_n parisiens_fw-la their_o hope_n be_v altogether_o take_v up_o with_o heaven_n they_o long_v for_o this_o eternal_a habitation_n the_o moment_n that_o stop_v they_o here_o below_o seem_v age_n the_o diversion_n illusion_n the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n seem_v torment_n to_o they_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o world_n a_o dangerous_a temptation_n now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n inspire_v they_o with_o strong_a desire_n of_o heaven_n point_v out_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bless_a fill_v they_o with_o hope_n of_o the_o shorten_n of_o their_o exile_n they_o live_v always_o in_o their_o desire_n after_o heaven_n comfort_n themselves_o with_o the_o expectation_n and_o by_o a_o certain_a hope_n taste_v the_o happiness_n they_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v satisfy_v with_o in_o a_o everlasting_a enjoyment_n now_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v sure_a and_o be_v found_v on_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n who_o can_v lie_v never_o delude_v the_o believer_n that_o listen_v to_o they_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o people_n such_o favour_n as_o whereby_o he_o strengthen_v their_o hope_n for_o what_o happiness_n they_o yet_o enjoy_v not_o the_o death_n he_o suffer_v for_o we_o be_v a_o assurance_n of_o that_o life_n he_o prepare_v for_o we_o neither_o can_v we_o doubt_v say_v augustine_n aug._n aug._n that_o we_o shall_v not_o reign_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n see_v he_o be_v willing_a to_o die_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n for_o what_o good_a thing_n may_v we_o not_o expect_v when_o his_o death_n be_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n and_o a_o assurance_n of_o the_o happiness_n we_o look_v for_o he_o that_o have_v this_o hope_n may_v boast_v himself_o happy_a before_o hand_n for_z philo_z jud._n philo_n jud._n the_o jew_n call_v it_o the_o forerunner_n of_o joy_n a_o harbinger_n pleasure_n precede_v the_o eternal_a one_o a_o aunt_n pass_v of_o blessedness_n 3._o god_n have_v already_o give_v they_o the_o beginning_n of_o glory_n they_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n of_o their_o inheritance_n until_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o purchase_a possession_n etc._n etc._n ephes_n 1.13_o here_o indeed_o the_o saint_n be_v son_n but_o they_o be_v not_o heir_n invest_v into_o that_o bless_a estate_n they_o have_v title_n to_o god_n reserve_v not_o all_o their_o happiness_n for_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o give_v they_o somewhat_o here_o to_o bear_v up_o their_o spirit_n to_o mitigate_v and_o sweeten_v their_o trouble_n in_o their_o absence_n from_o their_o husband_n and_o to_o render_v they_o happy_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o misery_n he_o shed_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n into_o their_o spirit_n with_o so_o much_o complacency_n that_o converse_v with_o man_n they_o may_v relish_v the_o bliss_n and_o happiness_n of_o angel_n he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o a_o pledge_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o one_o day_n they_o shall_v receive_v with_o he_o you_o know_v a_o earnest_n be_v for_o security_n of_o a_o contract_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v secure_v we_o of_o that_o bless_a estate_n we_o shall_v have_v hereafter_o in_o heaven_n a_o earnest_n likewise_o be_v part_n of_o the_o bargain_n a_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a that_o be_v secure_v though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o little_a yet_o it_o be_v a_o part_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o we_o in_o that_o peace_n and_o joy_n that_o it_o work_v in_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o peace_n and_o joy_n the_o saint_n shall_v for_o ever_o enjoy_v in_o heaven_n moreover_o a_o earnest_n be_v give_v rather_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o party_n that_o receive_v it_o then_o in_o regard_n of_o he_o that_o give_v it_o so_o god_n by_o give_v we_o this_o earnest_n of_o his_o spirit_n give_v we_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n he_o make_v we_o thereby_o to_o read_v our_o name_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n he_o take_v we_o into_o that_o privy_a chamber_n where_o the_o definitive_a sentence_n of_o our_o eternal_a happiness_n be_v pronounce_v he_o appli_v to_o we_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o himself_o interpose_v the_o caution_n of_o his_o promise_n he_o blot_v out_o those_o mortal_a discontent_n that_o labour_v to_o throw_v we_o into_o despair_n advance_v our_o hope_n by_o a_o prelibation_n of_o glory_n and_o handle_v we_o with_o so_o much_o tenderness_n that_o he_o that_o have_v this_o assurance_n can_v be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v be_v miserable_a in_o the_o other_o world_n that_o have_v be_v so_o happy_a in_o this_o the_o saint_n also_o have_v glory_n here_o in_o primitiis_fw-la they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v receive_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.23_o to_o assure_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o rich_a harvest_n and_o a_o good_a crop_n look_v as_o sometime_o it_o fall_v out_o with_o wicked_a man_n in_o their_o merry_a sport_n god_n send_v some_o horror_n of_o conscience_n into_o they_o that_o like_o a_o unwholesome_a damp_n choke_v all_o their_o pleasure_n which_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o hell_n a_o taste_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o wrath_n which_o the_o damn_a drink_n of_o in_o hell_n so_o when_o a_o godly_a man_n be_v in_o his_o sad_a dump_n when_o he_o be_v almost_o bury_v in_o the_o gulf_n of_o trouble_n than_o god_n spirit_n do_v as_o jonathan_n take_v a_o little_a honey_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o his_o rod_n and_o give_v it_o he_o to_o eat_v which_o comfort_v his_o faint_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n than_o drop_v a_o little_a comfort_n upon_o a_o afflict_a heart_n give_v he_o a_o taste_n of_o the_o river_n of_o pleasure_n and_o secret_o assure_v he_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o one_o day_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v communion_n with_o he_o to_o all_o eternity_n these_o be_v the_o very_a first_o fruit_n of_o heaven_n the_o godly_a be_v already_o glorify_v in_o part_n because_o that_o wherein_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n do_v consist_v they_o have_v now_o in_o part_n they_o know_v god_n in_o part_n they_o do_v here_o enjoy_v god_n and_o christ_n in_o part_n they_o have_v now_o communion_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o live_v in_o they_o and_o god_n be_v say_v to_o make_v his_o abode_n in_o they_o that_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v glorious_a wherein_o god_n and_o christ_n do_v make_v their_o abode_n it_o be_v true_a what_o a_o holy_a man_n say_v a_o believer_n have_v coelum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la &_o christum_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la coelo_fw-la a_o christian_a have_v heaven_n within_o he_o and_o christ_n in_o that_o heaven_n where_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v certain_o there_o be_v heaven_n 4._o because_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v glorify_v therefore_o must_v the_o member_n also_o be_v glorify_v they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n he_o be_v their_o husband_n they_o be_v his_o spouse_n now_o where_o he_o be_v they_o must_v also_o be_v as_o he_o himself_o tell_v his_o disciple_n john_n 14._o now_o be_v the_o time_n of_o contract_n only_o the_o time_n of_o the_o marriage_n solemnity_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o appear_v of_o christ_n now_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v 1_o john_n 3.2_o but_o when_o he_o who_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v also_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n colos_n 3.4_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o person_n be_v now_o glorious_a ought_v not_o christ_n to_o suffer_v these_o thing_n and_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n luke_n 24.26_o this_o glory_n be_v give_v he_o by_o god_n his_o father_n 1_o pet._n 1.21_o john_n 17.24_o now_o when_o it_o be_v say_v god_n the_o father_n give_v he_o glory_n it_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o essential_a glory_n because_o he_o have_v that_o from_o all_o eternity_n but_o by_o glory_n be_v mean_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o mediatorship_n and_o the_o glory_n he_o have_v after_o his_o resurrection_n wherein_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v like_o unto_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n now_o real_a glory_n be_v give_v to_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n so_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o time_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n he_o have_v it_o with_o his_o father_n before_o the_o world_n be_v john_n 17.5_o as_o the_o sun_n when_o there_o be_v a_o cloud_n between_o we_o and_o it_o the_o sun_n
still_o keep_v its_o splendour_n but_o when_o the_o cloud_n be_v go_v we_o see_v it_o so_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o deity_n have_v this_o glory_n always_o it_o be_v hide_v from_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o infirmity_n which_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o suffering_n death_n etc._n etc._n now_o christ_n our_o head_n be_v glorify_v all_o his_o member_n that_o suffer_v with_o he_o shall_v also_o be_v glorify_v together_o they_o be_v now_o glorify_v in_o capite_fw-la and_o when_o christ_n have_v prepare_v place_n for_o all_o his_o member_n than_o he_o will_v take_v they_o home_o to_o his_o father_n house_n christ_n be_v now_o prepare_v their_o glory_n and_o fit_v their_o heavenly_a mansion_n he_o be_v deck_v their_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n he_o be_v trim_v their_o robe_n christ_n be_v now_o in_o his_o own_o person_n glorious_a but_o christ_n mystical_a be_v not_o glorious_a it_o be_v in_o a_o suffer_a condition_n there_o be_v many_o of_o his_o member_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o bring_v home_o to_o god_n christ_n have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n as_o of_o his_o natural_a body_n he_o give_v his_o natural_a body_n to_o redeem_v his_o mystical_a body_n therefore_o as_o he_o be_v glorious_a in_o his_o natural_a body_n so_o he_o will_v be_v glorious_a in_o his_o mystical_a body_n for_o st._n paul_n say_v he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n the_o son_n of_o god_n rise_v glorious_o out_o of_o his_o tomb_n and_o after_o he_o have_v give_v assurance_n of_o it_o to_o his_o apostle_n he_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o reign_v there_o eternal_o with_o his_o father_n the_o angel_n make_v a_o part_n of_o his_o triumph_n his_o body_n that_o be_v pierce_v with_o the_o nail_n rend_v with_o stripe_n tear_v with_o thorn_n be_v set_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n on_o a_o throne_n who_o ornament_n be_v justice_n and_o the_o foundation_n mercy_n as_o one_o well_o note_v his_o mystical_a body_n shall_v receive_v the_o like_a glorious_a entertainment_n the_o saint_n shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o reign_v in_o heaven_n with_o the_o angel_n those_o member_n that_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o quarrel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o misery_n and_o reign_v in_o glory_n everlasting_o with_o their_o head_n that_o the_o blessedness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v have_v its_o accomplishment_n and_o he_o may_v be_v as_o happy_a in_o his_o member_n as_o in_o his_o person_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v unite_v in_o their_o suffering_n on_o earth_n and_o by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v they_o shall_v be_v so_o one_o day_n in_o their_o glory_n in_o heaven_n to_o this_o end_n christ_n pray_v for_o his_o church_n to_o his_o father_n when_o himself_o be_v upon_o earth_n the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o also_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v behold_v my_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o john_n 17.22_o 24._o it_o be_v observable_a that_o in_o other_o thing_n when_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v to_o his_o father_n it_o be_v with_o so_o much_o respect_n that_o he_o seem_v rather_o a_o servant_n than_o a_o son_n but_o when_o he_o ask_v that_o his_o member_n may_v reign_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n it_o be_v with_o so_o much_o liberty_n of_o speech_n that_o his_o request_n be_v rather_o a_o determination_n then_o a_o prayer_n volo_fw-la pater_fw-la father_n i_o will_v that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o my_o servant_n may_v be_v chap._n v._o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o saint_n glory_n now_o that_o i_o may_v set_v forth_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o saint_n glory_n you_o be_v to_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o specisical_a or_o essential_a difference_n between_o our_o gracious_a and_o glorious_a estate_n as_o there_o be_v no_o specifical_a or_o essential_a difference_n between_o the_o corn_n of_o the_o first-fruit_n and_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a harvest_n only_o some_o accidental_a difference_n as_o there_o be_v no_o specifical_a difference_n between_o a_o child_n and_o a_o grow_v man_n they_o have_v both_o the_o same_o essential_a part_n and_o principle_n there_o be_v only_o a_o alteration_n of_o degree_n not_o of_o part_n &_o gradus_fw-la non_fw-la variat_fw-la speciem_fw-la now_o our_o present_a estate_n be_v our_o infancy_n our_o future_a estate_n be_v our_o manhood_n for_o the_o present_a the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v glory_n give_v they_o godly_a man_n be_v for_o the_o present_a glorious_a the_o scripture_n call_v they_o nothing_o else_o but_o bless_a yea_o even_o than_o they_o be_v bless_v when_o the_o world_n look_v upon_o they_o as_o most_o miserable_a when_o shame_n reproach_n and_o trouble_n be_v cast_v upon_o they_o than_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n rest_n upon_o they_o they_o have_v grace_n bestow_v upon_o they_o have_v glory_n glory_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o splendour_n the_o brightness_n of_o grace_n vita_fw-la gratiae_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la aetas_fw-la infantilis_fw-la gloriae_fw-la he_o that_o be_v gracious_a be_v glorious_a we_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o individual_a body_n and_o soul_n after_o the_o resurrection_n as_o we_o have_v in_o this_o life_n only_o some_o alteration_n in_o respect_n of_o some_o new_a quality_n as_o in_o our_o first_o resurrection_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o righteousness_n there_o be_v no_o transmutation_n of_o the_o essence_n but_o a_o alteration_n of_o the_o quality_n or_o a_o super-introduction_n of_o new_a quality_n by_o which_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v new_a creature_n 2_o cor._n 5.17_o not_o in_o quantity_n but_o in_o quality_n so_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v become_v new_a creature_n in_o respect_n of_o what_o we_o be_v now_o and_o those_o very_a quality_n which_o do_v principal_o concur_v to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o happiness_n in_o heaven_n be_v in_o some_o measure_n communicate_v to_o we_o in_o our_o first_o regeneration_n now_o we_o have_v drop_n than_o river_n of_o delight_n psal_n 36.8_o both_o the_o same_o in_o nature_n this_o will_v be_v the_o more_o evident_a if_o we_o examine_v wherein_o our_o happiness_n hereafter_o do_v consist_v and_o compa_fw-mi ing_z it_o with_o our_o present_a estate_n our_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a blessedness_n consist_v in_o the_o fruition_n of_o such_o a_o object_n as_o be_v perfect_o all-sufficient_o and_o principal_o good_a which_o be_v only_a god_n therefore_o it_o stand_v in_o our_o perfect_a union_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o god_n the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n dilate_v extend_v and_o enlarge_v so_o far_o as_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o perfect_a operation_n of_o the_o understanding_n will_n and_o affection_n unite_v to_o god_n in_o all_o their_o action_n and_o when_o these_o natural_a weak_a and_o vile_a body_n of_o we_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n of_o omnipotency_n be_v transfigure_v and_o transform_v into_o spiritual_a powerful_a and_o glorious_a body_n and_o so_o unite_v to_o the_o soul_n then_o be_v we_o come_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o blessedness_n the_o property_n of_o which_o blessedness_n be_v first_o that_o it_o be_v everlasting_a second_o that_o we_o shall_v discern_v it_o so_o to_o be_v and_o three_o that_o as_o it_o fulfil_v the_o large_a desire_n of_o our_o heart_n so_o we_o shall_v be_v extraordinary_o affect_v with_o it_o and_o perpetual_o affect_v to_o it_o and_o incessant_o desirous_a of_o it_o our_o glory_n consist_v not_o in_o have_v what_o our_o weak_a soul_n can_v now_o wish_v for_o but_o what_o they_o can_v desire_v when_o they_o be_v glorious_o corroborate_v and_o enlarge_v so_o that_o now_o you_o see_v there_o be_v no_o specifical_a or_o essential_a difference_n but_o only_o a_o gradual_a or_o circumstantial_a difference_n between_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n here_o and_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n hereafter_o for_o regnum_fw-la coeleste_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la contemplatio_fw-la glorificatio_fw-la arrian_n gregor_n nazianz●n_n orat._n contr_n arrian_n &_o celebratio_fw-la cum_fw-la angelis_n communis_fw-la say_v one_o of_o the_o father_n who_o common_o describe_v the_o state_n of_o the_o bless_a to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a accomplishment_n of_o such_o spiritual_a blessing_n as_o be_v already_o begin_v in_o we_o and_o in_o part_n already_o communicate_v to_o we_o when_o god_n shall_v by_o a_o most_o perfect_a and_o immediate_a irradiation_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o sanctification_n of_o the_o will_n and_o affection_n to_o know_v love_n and_o delight_n in_o god_n and_o transformation_n of_o the_o body_n into_o the_o likeness_n of_o christ_n effect_v
the_o everlasting_a glorification_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n quest_n but_o will_v not_o this_o diminish_v and_o lessen_v the_o excellency_n of_o our_o future_a estate_n and_o make_v it_o far_o less_o eminent_a than_o the_o scripture_n describe_v it_o to_o be_v 2_o cor._n 4.17_o and_o consequent_o less_o desirable_a and_o the_o hope_n and_o assurance_n of_o it_o less_o able_a to_o solace_v we_o against_o our_o present_a suffering_n sol._n i_o answer_v no_o for_o beside_o the_o admirable_a alteration_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o body_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o present_a base_a condition_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o far_o great_a alteration_n in_o our_o soul_n though_o it_o be_v not_o specifical_a and_o essential_a as_o may_v appear_v in_o compare_v the_o first-fruit_n with_o the_o whole_a harvest_n what_o be_v a_o handful_n to_o the_o whole_a crop_n what_o be_v a_o drop_n of_o water_n to_o the_o whole_a ocean_n what_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o star_n and_o candle-light_n to_o that_o of_o the_o sun_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o essential_a difference_n between_o these_o no_o more_o then_o between_o a_o mountain_n and_o a_o molehill_n both_o have_v the_o same_o common_a nature_n god_n can_v raise_v quality_n as_o well_o as_o substance_n to_o a_o most_o eminent_a and_o glorious_a perfection_n if_o we_o in_o the_o state_n of_o renovation_n find_v such_o comfort_n as_o be_v many_o time_n unspeakable_a and_o glorious_a even_o in_o this_o our_o day_n of_o small_a thing_n that_o they_o make_v we_o to_o glory_n in_o tribulation_n and_o to_o triumph_v over_o the_o great_a evil_n in_o this_o life_n how_o absolute_a and_o transcendent_o ravish_v shall_v our_o contentment_n be_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v above_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o evil_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o all_o perfection_n hence_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o to_o conceive_v of_o the_o blessedness_n of_o our_o future_a estate_n viz._n not_o to_o think_v of_o it_o after_o a_o carnal_a manner_n as_o if_o it_o do_v consist_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v sleep_a marry_v possess_v of_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o house_n rich_o furnish_v and_o adorn_v or_o in_o a_o turkish_a paradise_n in_o sensual_a delight_n and_o follow_v our_o sport_n and_o recreation_n but_o rather_o in_o exercise_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n in_o a_o glorious_a and_o heavenly_a communion_n with_o the_o holy_a trinity_n saint_n and_o angel_n as_o rom._n 14.17_o in_o live_v a_o celestial_a and_o angelical_a kind_n of_o life_n as_o luke_n 20.35_o such_o as_o be_v describe_v isa_n 6.2_o 3._o psal_n 103.20_o matth._n 18.20_o luke_n 15.7_o luke_n 2.13_o 14._o a_o sincere_a christian_a condition_n and_o heavenly_a conversation_n be_v a_o obscure_a delineation_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o happy_a condition_n of_o the_o glorify_a and_o the_o saint_n do_v even_o live_v as_o it_o be_v a_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n they_o begin_v to_o live_v eternal_o and_o bless_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o if_o glory_n deserve_v such_o great_a admiration_n and_o estimation_n grace_n which_o be_v a_o spark_n and_o principle_n of_o it_o can_v be_v no_o mean_a thing_n therefore_o let_v those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v in_o christ_n so_o far_o magnify_v themselves_o against_o the_o insolence_n of_o ungodly_a man_n chap._n vi_o show_n that_o the_o perfect_a glory_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v invisible_a for_o the_o present_a sect_n i._o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o that_o the_o full_a dignity_n glory_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o apparent_a now_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o etc._n etc._n 1_o john_n 3.2_o our_o salvation_n be_v hide_v in_o this_o life_n our_o life_n of_o glory_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n col._n 3.3_o all_o the_o flourish_a beauty_n of_o the_o wine_n be_v all_o the_o dead_a time_n of_o the_o winter_n hide_v in_o the_o root_n of_o the_o vine_n christ_n our_o head_n our_o brother_n our_o ausband_n our_o saviour_n be_v keeper_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n it_o be_v hide_v in_o christ_n for_o the_o present_a therefore_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v and_o it_o be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n in_o god_n objective_n because_o of_o our_o happiness_n principal_o consist_v in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n or_o causaliter_fw-la because_o all_o our_o glory_n be_v derive_v from_o god_n or_o else_o in_o god_n that_o be_v apud_fw-la deum_fw-la in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o bestow_v it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n there_o be_v glory_n and_o happiness_n hide_v in_o christ_n for_o we_o upon_o the_o meditation_n hereof_o the_o psalmist_n cry_v out_o psal_n 31.19_o o_o how_o great_a be_v thy_o goodness_n which_o thou_o have_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o that_o fear_v thou_o how_o great_a it_o be_v particula_fw-la admirativa_fw-la bruno_n bruno_n nimis_fw-la supra_fw-la quam_fw-la dici_fw-la potest_fw-la admiratiuè_fw-la cum_fw-la nimio_fw-la pondere_fw-la bruno_n interpret_v it_o thus_o how_o great_a be_v thy_o goodness_n it_o be_v so_o wonderful_a that_o the_o tongue_n of_o a_o angel_n can_v express_v how_o great_a it_o be_v but_o this_o goodness_n be_v lay_v up_o it_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o thou_o have_v hide_v which_o thou_o have_v in_o secret_a preserve_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o apparent_a what_o goodness_n it_o be_v eye_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o ear_n hear_v neither_o have_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v what_o thing_n god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o love_v he_o 1_o cor._n 2.9_o this_o st._n paul_n speak_v who_o in_o that_o divine_a rapture_n into_o the_o three_o heaven_n see_v a_o flash_n of_o the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o glorious_a beauty_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o eye_n yet_o no_o eye_n ever_o see_v such_o glory_n our_o ear_n hear_v more_o than_o our_o eye_n can_v see_v we_o hear_v of_o glorious_a thing_n do_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o no_o ear_n ever_o hear_v of_o such_o glory_n our_o heart_n can_v conceive_v more_o than_o our_o eye_n can_v see_v or_o ear_n can_v hear_v or_o we_o can_v fancy_v great_a thing_n than_o can_v be_v present_v to_o the_o eye_n yet_o we_o can_v conceive_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o glory_n do_v not_o appear_v we_o have_v treasure_n of_o happiness_n but_o they_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o field_n our_o transcendent_a happiness_n be_v like_o a_o curious_a piece_n of_o arras_n role_v up_o not_o put_v down_o and_o expose_v to_o the_o view_n of_o man_n we_o be_v glorious_a star_n but_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o appear_v above_o the_o horizon_n the_o earth_n do_v interpose_v itself_o between_o we_o and_o the_o set_a sun_n and_o hide_v his_o light_n from_o we_o so_o these_o earthy_a body_n of_o we_o do_v interpose_v themselves_o between_o we_o and_o our_o glory_n that_o it_o can_v be_v see_v the_o happy_a and_o glorious_a estate_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v not_o now_o appear_v 1._o not_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o glory_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o this_o life_n be_v internal_a and_o spiritual_a the_o king_n daughter_n be_v all_o glorious_a within_o psal_n 45.13_o they_o be_v full_a of_o riches_n of_o glory_n and_o strength_n but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o inner_a man_n eph._n 3.16_o and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o obvious_a to_o carnal_a eye_n which_o if_o it_o be_v it_o will_v turn_v the_o most_o sensual_a epicure_n into_o mortify_a saint_n but_o the_o wicked_a want_n a_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v spiritual_a glory_n god_n people_n be_v worth_a million_o of_o man_n but_o they_o be_v god_n hidden_a one_o psal_n 83.3_o the_o world_n know_v they_o not_o because_o they_o know_v not_o god_n 1_o john_n 3.1_o and_o as_o moses_n his_o face_n when_o it_o shine_v have_v a_o vail_n over_o it_o so_o the_o glory_n of_o grace_n have_v a_o vail_n over_o it_o that_o not_o a_o glimpse_n of_o it_o appear_v to_o the_o wicked_a much_o less_o do_v the_o life_n of_o endless_a glory_n appear_v to_o they_o these_o thing_n do_v hide_v the_o glorious_a condition_n of_o the_o godly_a from_o the_o wicked_a 1._o their_o outward_a trouble_n their_o outward_a mean_a and_o base_a condition_n obscure_v their_o glory_n so_o that_o wicked_a man_n think_v godliness_n to_o be_v a_o contemptible_a thing_n what_o hide_v the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o jew_n why_o be_v he_o a_o man_n reject_v and_o despise_v among_o man_n it_o be_v the_o baseness_n of_o his_o outward_a condition_n that_o hide_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n he_o
saint_n be_v therefore_o in_o judas_n ver_fw-la 6._o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v call_v the_o great_a day_n especial_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o day_n of_o great_a light_n now_o it_o be_v light_a that_o make_v the_o day_n and_o the_o more_o light_a the_o more_o day_n now_o in_o this_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o shall_v be_v abundance_n of_o light_n a_o full_a discovery_n of_o thing_n and_o person_n then_o shall_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v more_o full_o manifest_a and_o thing_n shall_v real_o then_o appear_v as_o they_o be_v the_o great_a discovery_n here_o be_v imperfect_a to_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v on_o that_o day_n then_o god_n shall_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o all_o the_o world_n who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n then_o shall_v all_o hide_a thing_n be_v make_v manifest_a luk._n 12._o 2._o that_o be_v the_o time_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n rom._n 2.5_o sect_n iii_o the_o excellent_a glory_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o for_o these_o reason_n reas_n 1._o because_o god_n will_v try_v his_o child_n whether_o they_o will_v trust_v he_o or_o no._n whether_o they_o will_v believe_v his_o promise_n of_o happiness_n and_o cast_v themselves_o upon_o god_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o promise_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n where_o be_v faith_n if_o god_n shall_v make_v their_o future_a glory_n to_o appear_v to_o they_o otherwise_o then_o by_o promise_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v glorious_a shall_v god_n take_v his_o child_n and_o carry_v they_o up_o upon_o a_o mount_n as_o he_o do_v moses_n and_o there_o show_v they_o their_o future_a glory_n or_o take_v they_o up_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n as_o he_o do_v paul_n and_o there_o let_v they_o enjoy_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n how_o shall_v faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o how_o shall_v faith_n then_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v what_o be_v the_o thing_n the_o saint_n hope_v for_o be_v it_o not_o life_n everlasting_a be_v it_o not_o unspeakable_a glory_n be_v it_o not_o their_o complete_a happiness_n and_o be_v not_o these_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o view_n already_o if_o these_o thing_n do_v appear_v to_o they_o as_o the_o sun_n how_o can_v faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v no_o god_n will_v not_o here_o suffer_v their_o glory_n to_o appear_v but_o will_v have_v they_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n in_o his_o promise_n of_o glory_n and_o eternal_a happiness_n before_o he_o will_v open_v heaven_n to_o they_o and_o give_v they_o a_o actual_a possession_n of_o the_o heavenly_a mansion_n and_o set_v the_o glorious_a crown_n of_o righteousness_n upon_o their_o head_n reas_n 2._o because_o god_n will_v try_v whether_o we_o will_v be_v content_a to_o suffer_v for_o he_o and_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o he_o whether_o we_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o deny_v ourselves_o to_o become_v the_o object_n of_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n whether_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o way_n though_o they_o be_v somewhat_o rugged_a and_o hedge_v in_o with_o sharp_a thorn_n whether_o we_o as_o moses_n will_v choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o season_n whether_o we_o will_v prize_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n above_o riches_n more_o than_o the_o treasure_n of_o egypt_n and_o be_v content_a with_o his_o promise_n of_o future_a glory_n if_o the_o future_a glory_n and_o unspeakable_a happiness_n of_o god_n child_n shall_v for_o the_o present_a be_v make_v manifest_a if_o god_n shall_v open_v the_o window_n of_o heaven_n as_o he_o do_v to_o stephen_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v stop_v and_o let_v we_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n have_v crown_n of_o glory_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o robe_n of_o honour_n and_o palm_n of_o victory_n in_o his_o hand_n to_o bestow_v upon_o such_o as_o will_v endure_v reproach_n for_o his_o namesake_n and_o suffer_v any_o thing_n whatsoever_o god_n call_v they_o to_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o glory_n will_v make_v we_o all_o ready_a to_o be_v stone_v with_o stephen_n to_o be_v saw_v asunder_o with_o isaias_n to_o be_v imprison_v with_o joseph_n to_o suffer_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o moses_n then_o we_o shall_v esteem_v every_o reproachful_a contempt_n for_o christ_n sake_n more_o precious_a than_o the_o fair_a jewel_n but_o god_n do_v not_o suffer_v our_o future_a glory_n to_o appear_v because_o he_o will_v try_v if_o man_n will_v suffer_v for_o he_o and_o do_v his_o will_n and_o trust_v themselves_o for_o glory_n hereafter_o they_o that_o will_v sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n in_o the_o next_o life_n must_v swim_v through_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n in_o this_o life_n rev._n 15.2_o every_o one_o that_o look_v for_o glory_n in_o the_o next_o life_n must_v make_v account_n of_o the_o cross_n more_o or_o less_o in_o this_o life_n the_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v strew_v with_o cross_n and_o we_o must_v think_v it_o rather_o a_o honour_n then_o a_o labour_n to_o follow_v christ_n our_o master_n as_o alexander_n soldier_n follow_v he_o through_o mountain_n of_o snow_n reas_n 3_o because_o a_o future_a manifestation_n of_o their_o glorious_a happiness_n will_v make_v more_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n then_o if_o it_o do_v now_o appear_v 2_o thes_n 1.10_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v admire_v in_o all_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o day_n of_o horror_n that_o day_n of_o shame_n be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n then_o christ_n will_v be_v wonderful_o glorify_v in_o the_o glorification_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o than_o christ_n shall_v be_v admire_v in_o all_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v the_o angel_n all_o the_o saint_n the_o wicked_a and_o the_o devil_n themselves_o will_v be_v fill_v with_o admiration_n and_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o infinite_a love_n of_o christ_n in_o bestow_v such_o glory_n upon_o all_o believer_n wicked_a man_n will_v be_v astonish_v at_o it_o and_o admire_v christ_n in_o their_o glory_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v those_o poor_a contemn_a man_n among_o they_o to_o be_v so_o glorify_v above_o their_o expectation_n what_o will_v wicked_a man_n say_v what_o be_v yonder_o man_n in_o heaven_n i_o do_v scorn_v he_o i_o do_v despise_v he_o upon_o the_o earth_n what_o will_v another_o say_v be_v that_o man_n in_o heaven_n i_o see_v he_o burn_v at_o a_o stake_n i_o see_v this_o man_n imprison_v that_o man_n banish_v this_o man_n worry_v that_o man_n cast_v out_o of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o now_o behold_v their_o glory_n behold_v their_o happiness_n they_o will_v see_v and_o wonder_v at_o it_o to_o see_v what_o glory_n and_o honour_n christ_n have_v clothe_v they_o with_o then_o will_v they_o cry_v out_o we_o never_o think_v to_o see_v such_o poor_a despise_a wretch_n who_o we_o account_v the_o offscouring_a of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v in_o such_o glory_n so_o likewise_o how_o will_v the_o saint_n themselves_o admire_v christ_n how_o will_v they_o stand_v wonder_v at_o themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o glorious_a so_o happy_a how_o will_v they_o admire_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n that_o shall_v free_o bestow_v such_o unspeakable_a love_n upon_o they_o then_o will_v the_o saint_n say_v to_o christ_n lord_n what_o be_o i_o that_o thou_o shall_v thus_o honour_v i_o what_o glory_n do_v thou_o cast_v upon_o such_o a_o worm_n as_o i_o be_o lord_n i_o have_v suffer_v but_o little_a for_o thou_o i_o have_v do_v nothing_o for_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v thus_o glorify_v i_o reas_n 4._o therefore_o their_o glory_n do_v not_o yet_o appear_v because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n while_o they_o be_v in_o these_o earthly_a house_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o such_o glory_n mortality_n be_v no_o fit_a subject_n to_o have_v immortal_a glory_n to_o be_v put_v upon_o it_o these_o mortal_a body_n of_o we_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o robe_n of_o incorruptible_a honour_n yea_o these_o body_n of_o we_o wherein_o sin_n live_v be_v not_o fit_a to_o enjoy_v communion_n with_o god_n who_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n then_o to_o behold_v any_o unclean_a thing_n no_o there_o must_v be_v a_o dissolution_n of_o these_o earthly_a tabernacle_n mortality_n
must_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n this_o corruptible_a must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n then_o and_o not_o before_o shall_v the_o surpass_a glory_n of_o the_o saint_n appear_v as_o christ_n say_v we_o must_v not_o put_v new_a wine_n into_o old_a bottle_n nor_o patch_v a_o old_a garment_n with_o a_o piece_n of_o new_a cloth_n thus_o christ_n will_v not_o put_v the_o soul-ravishing_a joy_n of_o heaven_n into_o these_o old_a bottle_n nor_o will_v he_o patch_v up_o these_o fade_a perish_a body_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o angel_n reas_n 5._o that_o he_o may_v quicken_v their_o desire_n after_o their_o glory_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v pant_v after_o those_o water-brook_n those_o river_n of_o pleasure_n that_o we_o may_v cry_v out_o with_o monica_n the_o mother_n of_o st._n augustine_n in_o her_o ravish_a contemplation_n of_o heaven_n volemus_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la volemus_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la let_v we_o fly_v let_v we_o fly_v into_o heaven_n or_o as_o austin_n himself_o fontem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la sitio_fw-la esurio_fw-la i_o thirst_v i_o greedy_o long_a after_o the_o fountain_n of_o life_n chap._n vii_o sect._n 1_o albeit_o the_o unspeakable_a glory_n of_o believer_n be_v for_o the_o present_a hide_a yet_o in_o due_a time_n it_o shall_v be_v reveal_v colos_n 3.4_o when_o christ_n who_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v then_o shall_v we_o also_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n before_o christ_n shall_v appear_v in_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n we_o shall_v not_o but_o when_o the_o time_n of_o his_o appear_v in_o glory_n shall_v come_v then_o shall_v all_o the_o saint_n manifest_o appear_v with_o he_o quest_n here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v resp_n 1._o the_o glory_n of_o god_n himself_o god_n will_v manifest_v and_o display_v his_o glory_n before_o they_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o full_o and_o clear_o as_o we_o be_v capable_a by_o god_n immediate_a communication_n of_o himself_o to_o we_o without_o any_o external_a mean_n 1_o cor._n 15.24_o god_n will_v be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o that_o be_v god_n the_o father_n son_n holy_a ghost_n will_v then_o reign_v immediate_o over_o his_o church_n by_o himself_o without_o any_o outward_a mean_n and_o will_v fill_v his_o church_n with_o his_o own_o light_n life_n love_n and_o glory_n it_o be_v a_o dispute_v case_n whether_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o spiritual_a can_v be_v see_v with_o bodily_a eye_n and_o god_n be_v style_v by_o the_o apostle_n absolute_o invisible_a again_o the_o angel_n behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o saint_n now_o in_o heaven_n see_v he_o but_o have_v not_o eye_n therefore_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v rather_o a_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n then_o of_o the_o body_n intellectual_a knowledge_n not_o corporeal_a light_n but_o though_o we_o shall_v not_o with_o our_o eye_n see_v the_o divine_a essence_n yet_o the_o divine_a essence_n will_v abundant_o manifest_v itself_o in_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n now_o glorify_v to_o our_o eye_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o god_n in_o he_o his_o attribute_n in_o he_o in_o this_o life_n the_o ordinance_n be_v a_o glass_n to_o give_v we_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o glass_n to_o give_v our_o bodily_a eye_n the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v reveal_v his_o glory_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n to_o which_o he_o be_v unite_v his_o glory_n as_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v reveal_v it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n colos_n 3.4_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n luke_n 9.26_o and_o his_o appear_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n be_v call_v a_o glorious_a appear_v tit._n 2.13_o his_o first_o appear_v be_v mean_a the_o second_o shall_v be_v glorious_a sect_n ii_o the_o reason_n that_o the_o appear_v of_o christ_n shall_v be_v glorious_a be_v these_o 1._o because_o god_n have_v appoint_v christ_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n therefore_o christ_n will_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n appear_v glorious_o who_o god_n appoint_v to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v god_n appoint_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n john_n 5.22_o christ_n be_v god_n delegate_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n god_n will_v have_v his_o judge_n to_o appear_v in_o glory_n earthly_a king_n will_v have_v their_o itinerary_a judge_n to_o appear_v in_o pomp_n and_o to_o judge_v malefactor_n they_o appear_v both_o in_o terror_n and_o honour_n how_o do_v all_o the_o gentry_n give_v their_o attendance_n how_o be_v they_o attend_v with_o spear-man_n and_o the_o trumpet_n sound_v before_o they_o and_o be_v invest_v with_o robe_n of_o honour_n thus_o god_n will_v have_v his_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o appear_v in_o glory_n upon_o his_o tribunal_n and_o therefore_o charge_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n to_o attend_v his_o glorious_a majesty_n charge_v the_o archangel_n to_o sound_v the_o trump_n to_o awaken_v the_o sleepy_a prisoner_n in_o the_o grave_a the_o dark_a prison_n of_o death_n think_v you_o what_o a_o glorious_a appearance_n it_o will_v be_v if_o peter_n be_v amaze_v at_o christ_n upon_o mount_n tabor_n when_o he_o see_v but_o a_o glimpse_n of_o his_o glory_n at_o the_o transfiguration_n what_o appearance_n will_v that_o be_v when_o christ_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n with_o he_o clothe_v in_o brightness_n of_o glory_n 2._o because_o christ_n will_v be_v glorious_a before_o those_o that_o do_v dishonour_v he_o christ_n do_v appear_v to_o man_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n than_o he_o be_v a_o despise_a a_o reject_a christ_n then_o be_v he_o crown_v with_o a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o have_v no_o better_a sceptre_n than_o a_o reed_n then_o be_v he_o a_o revile_v a_o buffet_v christ_n the_o malicious_a jew_n do_v most_o contumelious_o spit_v on_o his_o face_n and_o every_o sinner_n will_v contradict_v oppose_v and_o persecute_v he_o then_o be_v he_o a_o crucify_a christ_n a_o man_n of_o sorrow_n and_o of_o shame_n every_o one_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o despise_a man_n none_o will_v own_v he_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yea_o the_o jew_n do_v accuse_v he_o for_o blasphemy_n for_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n will_v appear_v in_o glory_n one_o day_n to_o the_o horror_n and_o terror_n of_o these_o man_n that_o do_v thus_o blasphemous_o abuse_v he_o that_o be_v king_n of_o king_n that_o do_v reject_v he_o that_o come_v to_o save_v they_o that_o so_o christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v before_o they_o and_o upon_o they_o in_o take_v vengeance_n on_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n then_o those_o that_o do_v mock_v at_o he_o put_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n on_o his_o head_n a_o reed_n in_o his_o hand_n shall_v see_v he_o be_v heir_n of_o a_o better_a crown_n than_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o great_a king_n and_o emperor_n then_o they_o that_o do_v contumelious_o spit_v upon_o and_o buffet_v he_o in_o scorn_n shall_v see_v they_o do_v this_o to_o one_o who_o the_o angel_n reverence_n he_o will_v make_v king_n to_o throw_v down_o their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n to_o his_o foot_n then_o those_o that_o scorn_v and_o despise_v he_o shall_v see_v that_o very_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 3._o because_o glory_n be_v terrible_a the_o more_o glorious_a christ_n appear_v at_o the_o last_o day_n the_o more_o terror_n will_v be_v upon_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o the_o glorious_a appear_v of_o christ_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n be_v call_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o cor._n 6.11_o if_o the_o sight_n of_o one_o angel_n in_o glory_n be_v terrible_a what_o will_v the_o sight_n of_o christ_n be_v who_o will_v appear_v ten_o thousand_o time_n more_o glorious_a than_o all_o the_o angel_n be_v if_o godly_a man_n that_o have_v good_a conscience_n be_v so_o horrible_o affright_v at_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o angel_n in_o lesser_a glory_n how_o will_v wicked_a man_n that_o have_v accuse_v conscience_n be_v afraid_a at_o the_o behold_v christ_n glorious_a appearance_n if_o holy_a man_n be_v so_o amaze_v at_o good_a tiding_n because_o bring_v to_o they_o by_o a_o glorious_a messenger_n how_o will_v wicked_a man_n be_v amaze_v to_o hear_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n pronounce_v against_o they_o by_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n to_o see_v god_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o
unspeakable_a happiness_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o behold_v christ_n as_o a_o judge_n sit_v upon_o the_o tribunal_n will_v be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a torment_a punishment_n of_o damn_a man_n and_o devil_n the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n etc._n etc._n 2_o thes_n 1.7_o 8._o he_o shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o holy_a angel_n there_o be_v the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v the_o amaze_a terror_n of_o his_o glorious_a appear_v our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 24.29_o 30._o immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n shall_v the_o sun_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v her_o light_n and_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o great_a sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_n from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o heaven_n to_o the_o other_o consider_v here_o the_o sign_n forego_v his_o come_n verse_n 29._o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n shall_v lose_v their_o light_n in_o a_o strange_a and_o wonderful_a manner_n as_o it_o be_v hide_v their_o face_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v the_o high_a and_o more_o glorious_a part_n of_o the_o creation_n shall_v suffer_v a_o wonderful_a alteration_n at_o his_o come_n then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man._n which_o musculus_fw-la and_o arelius_fw-la take_v to_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o shall_v be_v glorious_o display_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n both_o for_o terror_n to_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o cross_n and_o for_o the_o joy_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n crucify_v but_o other_o take_v it_o for_o christ_n himself_o show_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o humane_a nature_n wherein_o he_o suffer_v now_o glorious_o appear_v for_o the_o confusion_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o full_a redemption_n of_o his_o servant_n then_o shall_v all_o the_o wicked_a of_o all_o nation_n mourn_v their_o guilty_a conscience_n be_v surprise_v with_o unspeakable_a horror_n at_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o judge_n who_o they_o shall_v see_v come_v as_o in_o a_o chariot_n of_o cloud_n arm_v with_o power_n and_o shine_v in_o glory_n send_v forth_o his_o angel_n by_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n to_o summons_v all_o the_o elect_a that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o give_v their_o attendance_n upon_o christ_n their_o glorious_a redeemer_n in_o matth._n 16.27_o you_o have_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n express_v and_o his_o act_n to_o be_v perform_v at_o his_o come_n his_o come_n be_v magnify_v by_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o his_o father_n wherein_o he_o shall_v appear_v and_o those_o bless_a attendant_n which_o shall_v follow_v he_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n etc._n etc._n quest_n but_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v why_o christ_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n since_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o own_o glory_n wherein_o he_o shall_v appear_v resp_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n in_o three_o respect_n 1._o to_o show_v his_o unity_n in_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n in_o that_o he_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n he_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o glory_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o 2._o by_o compare_v the_o humiliation_n of_o his_o person_n here_o in_o the_o flesh_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n shine_v perfect_o in_o the_o father_n even_o at_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v eclipse_v and_o veil_v in_o he_o by_o the_o human_a nature_n so_o that_o in_o this_o speech_n he_o compare_v the_o meaness_n of_o a_o servant_n wherein_o he_o now_o appear_v with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n wherein_o then_o he_o shall_v appear_v 3._o it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n because_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o he_o and_o after_o this_o his_o glorious_a come_n he_o be_v to_o deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o be_v say_v to_o come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n 4._o to_o which_o perhaps_o may_v be_v add_v a_o four_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n shine_v in_o the_o son_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n all_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n meet_v together_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a to_o this_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n wherein_o christ_n shall_v show_v himself_o at_o his_o come_n the_o glory_n of_o all_o earthly_a kingdom_n view_v at_o one_o landscape_n as_o the_o devil_n show_v they_o our_o saviour_n be_v nothing_o to_o that_o fullness_n of_o glory_n wherein_o our_o bless_a saviour_n shall_v reveal_v himself_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o abasement_n be_v wonderful_a when_o the_o star_n light_v the_o way_n to_o his_o lodging_n a_o angel_n bring_v word_n from_o heaven_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o then_o of_o his_o nativity_n when_o the_o devil_n leave_v he_o and_o the_o victory_n to_o he_o and_o angel_n come_v to_o minister_v unto_o he_o when_o devil_n roar_v and_o leave_v their_o possession_n at_o his_o call_n when_o wind_n and_o wave_n be_v silent_a at_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n when_o loaf_n and_o dead_a fish_n multiply_v upon_o his_o blessing_n upon_o the_o table_n or_o between_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o eater_n when_o all_o sort_n of_o disease_n give_v place_n and_o death_n itself_o yield_v up_o her_o dead_a at_o his_o command_n and_o yet_o belove_v that_o difference_n shall_v be_v between_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n at_o his_o come_n and_o this_o of_o his_o abasement_n which_o be_v between_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o despise_a meanness_n of_o a_o servant_n moreover_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v magnify_v by_o the_o bless_a attendant_n that_o shall_v follow_v he_o and_o they_o be_v his_o angel_n at_o that_o day_n they_o shall_v be_v employ_v as_o his_o special_a instrument_n in_o gather_v the_o wheat_n into_o his_o barn_n and_o bind_v up_o the_o tare_n to_o be_v burn_v with_o fire_n unquenchable_a o_o faithful_a soul_n how_o joyful_o shall_v thou_o expect_v this_o bless_a meeting_n o_o how_o happy_a will_v that_o day_n be_v when_o the_o holy_a angel_n of_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o meet_v thou_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o with_o abundance_n of_o joy_n shall_v embrace_v and_o welcome_v thou_o to_o thy_o everlasting_a home_n while_o thou_o be_v solitary_a forsake_a and_o despise_v in_o the_o world_n comfort_n thyself_o in_o expectation_n of_o this_o bless_a society_n with_o who_o thou_o shall_v remain_v for_o ever_o with_o who_o thou_o shall_v join_v in_o sweet_a hallelujah_n and_o word_n of_o praise_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n for_o evermore_o ear_n have_v not_o hear_v the_o sweetness_n of_o those_o song_n wherein_o the_o saint_n shall_v join_v with_o those_o bless_a angel_n sect_n iii_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n themselves_o shall_v be_v reveal_v they_o shall_v appear_v with_o christ_n in_o glory_n 1._o their_o appearance_n in_o glory_n with_o christ_n in_o judgement_n will_v make_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n more_o glorious_a and_o terrible_a when_o earthly_a king_n will_v show_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o kingdom_n they_o will_v always_o have_v a_o pompous_a train_n to_o follow_v they_o thus_o christ_n the_o great_a of_o king_n delight_v to_o manifest_v his_o glory_n will_v come_v attend_v with_o glorious_a troop_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n 2._o because_o it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o the_o glorify_v of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o two_o way_n 1._o because_o they_o shall_v come_v as_o judge_n and_o shall_v sit_v upon_o throne_n judge_v the_o wicked_a how_o will_v wicked_a man_n quake_v when_o they_o shall_v appear_v before_o those_o godly_a man_n who_o they_o hate_v and_o deride_v now_o the_o saint_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 6.2_o 1._o assistendo_fw-la they_o shall_v
unserviceable_a to_o he_o it_o be_v against_o their_o will_n say_v the_o apostle_n it_o be_v against_o their_o very_a natural_a instinct_n and_o inclination_n that_o they_o must_v be_v slave_n and_o drudge_n to_o sinful_a rebel_n moreover_o the_o creature_n by_o a_o natural_a instinct_n do_v natural_o tend_v to_o their_o own_o high_a and_o ultimate_a perfection_n sin_n spoil_v they_o of_o it_o and_o keep_v they_o from_o this_o perfection_n but_o this_o natural_a inclination_n be_v still_o in_o the_o creature_n perfection_n and_o duration_n be_v the_o desire_n of_o all_o creature_n but_o this_o perfection_n shall_v not_o and_o can_v be_v enjoy_v by_o the_o creature_n till_o there_o be_v a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n hence_o it_o be_v say_v they_o earnest_o expect_v that_o manifestation_n the_o saint_n expect_v christ_n manifestation_n in_o glory_n for_o till_o he_o appear_v they_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o glory_n the_o creature_n expect_v their_o appearance_n for_o till_o the_o son_n of_o god_n appear_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v from_o their_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n sect_n vi_o now_o if_o the_o creature_n who_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o answerable_a measure_n of_o glory_n but_o be_v only_o bring_v into_o glorious_a liberty_n not_o into_o glory_n itself_o as_o calvin_n loc._n calvin_n in_o loc._n note_v do_v thus_o wait_v for_o this_o glorious_a manifestation_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v we_o who_o it_o main_o concern_v and_o for_o who_o sake_n that_o day_n be_v create_v and_o ordain_v and_o who_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o fullness_n of_o glory_n in_o comparison_n of_o they_o how_o shall_v we_o wait_v all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o appoint_a time_n till_o our_o change_n shall_v come_v this_o expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n shall_v teach_v the_o godly_a who_o duty_n it_o be_v to_o expect_v to_o long_o for_o to_o hasten_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o this_o glory_n solomon_n send_v the_o sluggard_n to_o the_o pismire_n and_o bid_v he_o learn_v of_o he_o diligence_n and_o industry_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v to_o the_o godly_a man_n go_v to_o the_o creature_n thou_o dull_a and_o slothful_a man_n and_o learn_v of_o the_o creature_n to_o look_v for_o and_o to_o be_v more_o and_o more_o in_o expectation_n of_o the_o manifestation_n of_o thy_o own_o glory_n the_o creature_n expect_v when_o you_o shall_v be_v manifest_v in_o glory_n be_v it_o not_o a_o shame_n then_o to_o those_o who_o be_v son_n and_o heir_n of_o glory_n not_o to_o expect_v their_o own_o glory_n the_o creature_n lift_v up_o their_o eye_n to_o heaven_n cry_v how_o long_a lord_n be_v it_o not_o a_o shame_n then_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v cast_v their_o eye_n down_o to_o the_o earth_n on_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o which_o pass_v away_o like_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n the_o creature_n put_v forth_o their_o head_n and_o cry_v why_o be_v the_o wheel_n of_o the_o chariot_n so_o long_o in_o come_v be_v it_o not_o a_o shame_n then_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o hang_v their_o head_n down_o be_v it_o not_o a_o shame_n to_o we_o that_o senseless_a creature_n shall_v be_v earnest_a and_o we_o slack_v in_o our_o expectation_n shall_v senseless_a creature_n outstrip_v those_o who_o be_v endue_v with_o reason_n and_o grace_n shall_v their_o hope_n outstrip_v our_o hope_n if_o you_o believe_v there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o manifestation_n and_o that_o you_o in_o particular_a shall_v be_v manifest_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n show_v i_o your_o faith_n by_o your_o earnest_a expectation_n you_o have_v but_o poor_a desire_n of_o christ_n come_n and_o your_o own_o glory_n who_o expectation_n be_v so_o cold_a and_o faint_a if_o the_o creature_n be_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o very_a glory_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v how_o much_o more_o earnest_n will_v they_o be_v in_o expect_v the_o manifestation_n of_o it_o the_o very_a cause_n why_o we_o do_v not_o more_o earnest_o expect_v our_o glorious_a manifestation_n be_v our_o earthly-mindedness_a we_o mind_v earth_n so_o much_o therefore_o do_v we_o expect_v heaven_n so_o little_a chap._n x._o show_n there_o be_v no_o comparison_n or_o equality_n between_o a_o believer_n present_a suffering_n and_o his_o future_a glory_n sect_n i._o the_o next_o proposition_n i_o shall_v lay_v down_o from_o this_o text_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n proportion_n or_o equality_n between_o the_o present_a suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o their_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v their_o present_a affliction_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n with_o glory_n comparison_n between_o they_o be_v odious_a we_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o our_o affliction_n on_o that_o day_n we_o speak_v of_o glory_n that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n or_o proportion_n between_o they_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o ensue_a particular_n i._o if_o you_o look_v at_o the_o thing_n themselves_o which_o you_o suffer_v for_o the_o present_a and_o what_o you_o shall_v enjoy_v hereafter_o there_o be_v no_o more_o comparison_n between_o they_o than_o there_o be_v between_o a_o molehill_n and_o the_o sun_n a_o drop_n and_o the_o sea_n of_o water_n a_o little_a pebble_n and_o a_o rock_n of_o diamond_n 1._o you_o suffer_v perhaps_o the_o loss_n of_o good_n you_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n who_o be_v all_o goodness_n what_o comparison_n be_v there_o betwixt_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o creator_n all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v but_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o a_o bucket_n before_o he_o what_o then_o be_v thy_o good_n thy_o riches_n to_o god_n himself_o 2._o suppose_v you_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o house_n and_o land_n you_o shall_v possess_v a_o great_a kingdom_n fear_v not_o little_a flock_n it_o be_v your_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n what_o comparison_n be_v there_o between_o thy_o earthly_a possession_n and_o that_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o whole_a earth_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v but_o a_o point_n what_o be_v thy_o house_n and_o land_n to_o that_o heavenly_a kingdom_n 3._o do_v you_o suffer_v mock_n revile_n evil_a speaking_n reproach_n before_o man_n and_o from_o man_n christ_n will_v confess_v you_o before_o his_o father_n and_o before_o his_o holy_a angel_n what_o be_v man_n revile_n and_o defamation_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n before_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o glorious_a angel_n 4._o perhaps_o you_o suffer_v imprisonment_n you_o may_v lie_v in_o nasty_a dungeon_n your_o foot_n may_v be_v in_o the_o stock_n your_o hand_n manacle_v what_o be_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v when_o you_o shall_v walk_v at_o large_a in_o heaven_n and_o follow_v the_o lamb_n wheresoever_o he_o go_v here_o you_o be_v man_n prisoner_n there_o you_o shall_v be_v the_o lord_n freeman_n here_o you_o be_v fetter_v captive_n there_o you_o shall_v be_v crown_v king_n 5._o you_o may_v suffer_v present_a banishment_n from_o your_o country_n from_o your_o wife_n child_n parent_n kindred_n friend_n in_o heaven_n you_o shall_v enjoy_v communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o god_n with_o christ_n with_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n with_o the_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o first-born_a and_o live_v among_o all_o glorious_a saint_n 6._o for_o the_o present_a you_o may_v suffer_v much_o sorrow_n tear_n may_v be_v your_o meat_n and_o drink_v continual_o but_o what_o be_v your_o present_a sorrow_n to_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o heaven_n one_o drop_n of_o which_o fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o believer_n make_v he_o for_o the_o present_a to_o rejoice_v with_o glorious_a and_o unspeakable_a joy_n what_o be_v your_o drop_a tear_n to_o the_o river_n of_o pleasure_n which_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n 7._o at_o present_v you_o may_v be_v put_v to_o shame_n and_o confusion_n man_n may_v set_v crown_n of_o paper_n upon_o your_o head_n have_v devil_n paint_v on_o they_o as_o they_o do_v upon_o john_n huss_n or_o you_o may_v have_v crown_n of_o straw_n put_v upon_o your_o head_n in_o derision_n as_o some_o other_o martyr_n or_o crown_n of_o thorn_n as_o christ_n have_v but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n the_o crown_n of_o immortality_n which_o christ_n the_o righteous_a judge_n will_v set_v upon_o your_o head_n 8._o put_v case_n you_o suffer_v death_n for_o christ_n of_o which_o cup_n many_o million_o of_o heaven_n worthy_n have_v drink_v put_v case_n it_o be_v a_o shameful_a torment_a death_n a_o burn_a a_o saw_v asunder_o you_o be_v stone_v or_o bury_v alive_a or_o starve_v to_o death_n or_o tear_v in_o piece_n by_o lion_n whatsoever_o the_o death_n be_v it_o be_v the_o worst_a
we_o shall_v know_v he_o as_o we_o be_v know_v object_n but_o even_o in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n we_o can_v see_v god_n with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n therefore_o lest_o our_o bodily_a eye_n shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o a_o apt_a delightsome_a object_n the_o glory_n which_o god_n will_v put_v on_o the_o creature_n will_v be_v the_o delight_n of_o glorify_a eye_n than_o we_o shall_v be_v ravish_v with_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n in_o invest_v the_o whole_a creation_n with_o such_o glory_n sol._n though_o this_o be_v probable_o true_a that_o the_o glorify_a saint_n shall_v delight_v in_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o shall_v admire_v god_n in_o their_o glory_n yet_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o renovation_n of_o the_o creature_n there_o will_v be_v most_o admirable_a object_n for_o the_o glorify_a saint_n to_o behold_v as_o namely_o 1._o christ_n glorify_a body_n the_o brightness_n whereof_o will_v obscure_v the_o brightness_n of_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n neither_o of_o the_o sun_n nor_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o heaven_n rev._n 21.23_o 2._o as_o christ_n body_n so_o likewise_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n shall_v be_v the_o delight_n of_o their_o eye_n which_o shall_v shine_v more_o bright_a than_o the_o sun_n what_o delight_n then_o can_v the_o creature_n clothe_v with_o glory_n bring_v and_o in_o behold_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n we_o may_v behold_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n love_n grace_n of_o god_n in_o make_v handful_n of_o dust_n and_o earth_n such_o glorious_a creature_n as_o our_o body_n then_o shall_v be_v yet_o we_o may_v rational_o assert_v 1._o that_o god_n will_v ordain_v the_o creature_n to_o some_o use_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o creature_n shall_v continue_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o yet_o not_o serve_v to_o some_o use_n if_o you_o ask_v to_o what_o use_n lombard_n sentent_fw-fr lombard_n sentent_fw-fr make_v this_o answer_n ego_fw-la nescio_fw-la i_o know_v not_o the_o same_o answer_n peter_z martyr_n 8.21_o pet._n mert._n in_o rom._n 8.21_o give_v to_o the_o same_o question_n though_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n and_o common_a reason_n that_o the_o creature_n after_o its_o renovation_n shall_v be_v idle_a yet_o if_o you_o ask_v how_o they_o shall_v be_v employ_v facile_fw-la nos_fw-la fateamur_fw-la ignorare_fw-la we_o may_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o confess_v our_o ignorance_n 2._o doubtless_o god_n will_v adapt_v and_o fit_v the_o creature_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o glorify_a state_n of_o his_o child_n as_o be_v hint_v before_o which_o they_o shall_v then_o full_o and_o perfect_o know_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v actual_a possessor_n of_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n 3._o learned_a bain_n give_v this_o answer_n 1._o it_o may_v be_v god_n will_v have_v the_o whole_a creation_n to_o stand_v as_o a_o monument_n of_o his_o former_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n to_o his_o people_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o pilgrimage_n on_o earth_n 2._o or_o god_n will_v have_v they_o stand_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o majesty_n mere_o for_o great_a state_n as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v a_o state_n belong_v to_o earthly_a prince_n to_o have_v sumptuous_a house_n here_o and_o there_o which_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o once_o visit_v in_o all_o their_o reign_n 3._o god_n will_v have_v they_o stand_v as_o appurtenance_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o child_n the_o creature_n shall_v be_v keep_v as_o addition_n to_o their_o honour_n say_v calvin_n chrysostome_n homil_n calvin_n in_o loc_n chrysost_n homil_n speak_v of_o this_o use_v this_o comparison_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v deck_v with_o glory_n for_o as_o king_n in_o that_o day_n wherein_o they_o do_v solemn_o crown_v their_o son_n with_o some_o crown_n of_o principality_n they_o will_v not_o only_o take_v care_n that_o their_o son_n appear_v in_o great_a pomp_n and_o state_n but_o also_o the_o palace_n and_o all_o the_o courteour_n shall_v and_o must_v appear_v in_o the_o brave_a attire_n so_o god_n set_v the_o crown_n of_o immortality_n and_o blessedness_n on_o the_o head_n of_o all_o his_o child_n and_o place_v they_o on_o their_o prepare_a throne_n will_v have_v the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o his_o creature_n appear_v in_o glory_n in_o that_o day_n these_o thing_n be_v consider_v how_o shall_v this_o cause_n the_o saint_n to_o be_v willing_a to_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o to_o die_v cheerful_o since_o in_o due_a time_n they_o shall_v find_v the_o world_n in_o a_o more_o glorious_a estate_n than_o they_o leave_v it_o but_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v thrust_v naked_a out_o of_o all_o chap._n xiii_o ii_o this_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v when_o all_o the_o drossy_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o work_n that_o be_v therein_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o when_o all_o the_o heap_n and_o mine_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n shall_v be_v consume_v to_o the_o last_o dram_n when_o all_o city_n town_n and_o stately_a edifice_n shall_v be_v destroy_v when_o all_o the_o outward_a pomp_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v burn_v to_o ash_n when_o the_o high_a mountain_n shall_v melt_v under_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o valley_n shall_v be_v cleave_v as_o wax_v before_o the_o sire_n and_o as_o the_o water_n that_o be_v pour_v down_o a_o steep_a place_n mich._n 1.4_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o dweller_n on_o earth_n be_v disseize_v and_o turn_v out_o of_o their_o possession_n then_o must_v king_n for_o ever_o part_n with_o their_o throne_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n and_o the_o great_a ruler_n on_o earth_n lie_v down_o their_o authority_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o christ_n then_o shall_v the_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o be_v bring_v low_o and_o many_o great_a captain_n shall_v call_v to_o the_o hill_n and_o mountain_n to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o face_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n rev._n 6.10_o then_o shall_v all_o trade_n and_o occupation_n in_o the_o world_n cease_v every_o where_o and_o all_o desire_n and_o study_v of_o purchase_v and_o gain_v shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n then_o shall_v the_o sea_n at_o that_o time_n show_v the_o great_a rage_n and_o fury_n and_o the_o wave_n thereof_o be_v so_o high_a and_o furious_a that_o it_o shall_v seem_v as_o if_o they_o will_v utter_o overwhelm_v the_o whole_a earth_n now_o at_o such_o a_o dreadful_a time_n as_o this_o when_o they_o that_o have_v their_o portion_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n must_v be_v strip_v of_o all_o and_o leave_v all_o for_o ever_o then_o shall_v god_n child_n take_v full_a and_o everlasting_a possession_n of_o the_o house_n of_o their_o heavenly_a father_n in_o which_o be_v many_o mansion_n and_o this_o high_o advance_v the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n because_o it_o come_v so_o seasonable_o to_o they_o give_v a_o man_n a_o house_n well_o furnish_v when_o his_o own_o be_v plunder_v and_o burn_v and_o the_o whole_a neighbourhood_n be_v undo_v and_o all_o the_o country_n round_o about_o be_v lay_v waste_n and_o make_v desolate_a how_o pleasant_a be_v it_o and_o when_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o flame_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o be_v consume_v to_o ash_n then_o to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v when_o our_o earthly_a habitation_n be_v burn_v then_o to_o have_v a_o build_n of_o god_n a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n what_o a_o inconceiveable_a happiness_n be_v it_o a_o word_n in_o season_n say_v solomon_n oh_o how_o good_a be_v it_o heaven_n be_v sweet_a at_o any_o time_n but_o heaven_n at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o this_o oh_o how_o good_a how_o unspeakable_o good_a be_v it_o st_o paul_n 2._o tim._n 4.7_o say_v i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n finish_v my_o course_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v unto_o i_o at_o that_o day_n on_o that_o day_n when_o the_o very_a earthworm_n that_o now_o creep_v upon_o the_o ground_n shall_v be_v convince_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n worth_n the_o have_v the●_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o heavenly_a mansion_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o world_n funeral_n and_o to_o enjoy_v a_o endure_a substance_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o world_n conflagration_n no_o tongue_n of_o
and_o woman_n of_o all_o sort_n that_o live_v before_o the_o flood_n after_o the_o flood_n before_o the_o law_n after_o the_o law_n before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n after_o his_o incarnation_n until_o this_o day_n and_o from_o this_o day_n that_o shall_v live_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n of_o all_o nation_n under_o heaven_n then_o who_o can_v tell_v the_o dust_n of_o jacob_n or_o number_v the_o four_o part_n the_o four_o hundred_o part_n of_o this_o israel_n of_o god_n the_o remnant_n and_o glean_n of_o those_o that_o have_v live_v in_o so_o many_o thousand_o year_n will_v arise_v to_o a_o unspeakable_a multitude_n after_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o hundred_o and_o forty_o four_o thousand_o of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n st._n john_n say_v i_o behold_v and_o lo_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o before_o the_o lamb_n clothe_v with_o white_a robe_n and_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n how_o shall_v this_o rejoice_v every_o faithful_a soul_n rest_v in_o hope_n of_o this_o sweet_a and_o most_o bless_a society_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n thou_o see_v many_o frown_n upon_o thou_o and_o sleight_v thou_o to_o thy_o face_n yea_o even_o shun_v thy_o company_n yet_o labour_v thou_o for_o a_o assure_a part_n in_o thy_o father_n house_n and_o then_o rejoice_v in_o assure_a hope_n there_o to_o find_v many_o dwell_a place_n and_o in_o those_o place_n many_o dweller_n many_o sweet_a companion_n though_o a_o man_n be_v constrain_v to_o live_v like_o a_o eremite_n or_o anchoret_n all_o his_o time_n from_o the_o company_n of_o man_n on_o earth_n yet_o the_o assure_a hope_n of_o this_o society_n to_o be_v enjoy_v for_o ever_o in_o our_o father_n house_n be_v sufficient_a to_o refresh_v he_o ascend_v my_o soul_n mount_v up_o on_o eagle_n wing_n and_o get_v above_o these_o sublunary_a thing_n make_v haste_n and_o fly_v unto_o that_o lofty_a hill_n where_o god_n abide_v with_o saint_n and_o angel_n still_o oh_o how_o shall_v every_o christian_a so_o love_v the_o lord_n as_o to_o long_o after_o his_o house_n and_o kingdom_n and_o a_o more_o near_o and_o full_a enjoy_n of_o his_o presence_n laban_n note_v in_o jacob_n a_o earnest_a longing_n after_o his_o father_n house_n genes_n 31.30_o say_v he_o to_o he_o thou_o will_v needs_o be_v go_v because_o thou_o soar_v longedst_a after_o thy_o father_n house_n jacob_n have_v such_o a_o love_n to_o his_o father_n isaac_n though_o very_o old_a and_o blind_a that_o he_o sore_o long_v to_o be_v go_v from_o laban_n to_o his_o father_n house_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v we_o labour_v for_o such_o love_n to_o our_o heavenly_a father_n who_o be_v infinite_a in_o all_o excellency_n and_o glory_n as_o shall_v make_v we_o weary_a of_o be_v here_o and_o exceed_o to_o long_a after_o our_o heavenly_a father_n house_n it_o be_v a_o good_a change_n for_o jacob_n to_o go_v from_o laban_n a_o unkind_a father-in-law_n unto_o isaac_n a_o love_a and_o tender-hearted_a father_n but_o what_o a_o bless_a change_n be_v it_o for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o go_v from_o the_o world_n a_o cruel_a stepmother_n yea_o a_o dangerous_a enemy_n unto_o god_n their_o heavenly_a and_o most_o gracious_a father_n to_o go_v from_o among_o swearer_n worldling_n drunkard_n profane_a person_n scorner_n of_o religion_n persecutor_n to_o go_v from_o snare_n and_o temptation_n to_o go_v from_o sin_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o sin_n to_o go_v from_o the_o low_a region_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o foot_n of_o satan_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v over_o our_o head_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o air_n i_o say_v to_o go_v from_o all_o these_o and_o to_o go_v into_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o most_o gracious_a father_n shall_v not_o a_o child_n of_o god_n long_o after_o this_o exceed_o it_o show_v want_n of_o love_n in_o a_o child_n and_o a_o ungracious_a disposition_n when_o he_o secret_o long_v for_o his_o father_n land_n or_o good_n because_o he_o can_v enjoy_v they_o unless_o his_o father_n die_v who_o life_n shall_v be_v much_o dear_a to_o a_o child_n then_o all_o his_o good_n or_o land_n but_o it_o argue_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o love_n to_o our_o heavenly_a father_n when_o we_o have_v a_o earnest_a longing_n after_o that_o glorious_a inheritance_n of_o he_o because_o we_o shall_v live_v with_o he_o in_o the_o everlasting_a habitation_n and_o to_o this_o end_n let_v we_o labour_n to_o get_v our_o soul_n full_o assure_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o father_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o we_o be_v his_o child_n that_o so_o we_o may_v long_o after_o our_o father_n house_n if_o we_o see_v our_o father_n house_n we_o will_v cry_v to_o be_v over_o the_o water_n and_o to_o be_v carry_v in_o christ_n arm_n out_o of_o this_o borrow_a prison_n the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n low_a house_n while_o we_o be_v lodge_v here_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n to_o lie_v ever_o in_o one_o chamber_n but_o must_v be_v content_a sometime_o to_o remove_v from_o one_o corner_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v nether_a house_n to_o another_o rest_v in_o hope_n that_o when_o we_o come_v up_o to_o the_o lord_n be_v upper_a house_n we_o shall_v remove_v no_o more_o because_o than_o we_o shall_v be_v at_o home_n we_o now_o see_v and_o hear_v at_o home_n and_o abroad_o nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o grief_n and_o discouragement_n which_o indeed_o make_v our_o life_n bitter_a but_o let_v this_o comfort_v all_o faithful_a christian_n that_o christ_n be_v come_v to_o fetch_v they_o to_o his_o father_n house_n his_o father_n will_v make_v they_o welcome_a and_o give_v they_o houseroom_n and_o though_o they_o change_v dwell_v place_n yet_o they_o shall_v not_o change_v their_o master_n nor_o their_o service_n his_o servant_n shall_v serve_v he_o revel_v 22.3_o sect_n iv_o moreover_o you_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o heaven_n be_v the_o throne_n and_o kingdom_n of_o god_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n isai_n 66.7_o here_o be_v the_o height_n of_o a_o christian_n glory_n and_o exaltation_n to_o be_v take_v up_o into_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n rev._n 3.21_o to_o he_o that_o overcome_v will_v i_o give_v to_o sit_v with_o i_o in_o my_o throne_n even_o as_o i_o also_o overcome_v and_o sit_v down_o with_o my_o father_n in_o his_o throne_n christ_n at_o the_o last_o day_n will_v say_v to_o the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n receive_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n you_o that_o have_v follow_v i_o in_o the_o regeneration_n to_o you_o i_o have_v appoint_v a_o kingdom_n luke_n 22.29_o fear_v not_o little_a flock_n it_o be_v your_o father_n will_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n rev._n 2.10_o be_v faithful_a to_o the_o death_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o th●_n crown_n of_o life_n in_o one_o place_n it_o be_v call_v a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n in_o another_o a_o crown_n of_o glory_n in_o a_o three_o a_o crown_n of_o incorruption_n and_o elsewhere_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n now_o crown_v you_o know_v be_v give_v either_o as_o ensign_n of_o majesty_n or_o reward_n of_o virtue_n 1._o as_o ensign_n of_o majesty_n therefore_o we_o see_v they_o be_v wear_v on_o the_o head_n of_o emperor_n and_o prince_n when_o at_o time_n of_o high_a solemnity_n they_o will_v show_v their_o great_a magnificence_n 2._o as_o reward_n of_o virtue_n therefore_o by_o ancient_a story_n it_o appear_v that_o almost_o all_o nation_n such_o as_o excel_v in_o valour_n or_o in_o learning_n they_o be_v crown_v with_o one_o thing_n or_o another_o some_o with_o rose_n some_o with_o laurel_n or_o bay_n some_o with_o olive_n some_o with_o gold_n that_o so_o they_o may_v cherish_v the_o profession_n and_o exercise_n of_o art_n and_o virtue_n to_o these_o the_o scripture_n allude_v it_o promise_v crown_n and_o a_o kingdom_n as_o the_o goodly_a reward_n we_o can_v either_o desire_v or_o receive_v to_o such_o as_o through_o faith_n and_o patience_n overcome_v either_o the_o affection_n of_o their_o sinful_a nature_n or_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o wretched_a world_n hence_o i_o infer_v how_o abject_a soever_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v most_o glorious_a in_o heaven_n glory_n shall_v follow_v their_o suffering_n as_o the_o day_n follow_v the_o night_n there_o be_v no_o glory_n upon_o earth_n you_o know_v great_a than_o the_o glory_n of_o king_n it_o be_v true_a pope_n of_o late_a day_n have_v strive_v to_o out-climb_a they_o so_o the_o bramble_n in_o jotham_n
parable_n will_v have_v out-climbed_n the_o cedar_n they_o will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v create_v as_o the_o sun_n to_o rule_v the_o day_n that_o be_v over_o the_o clergy_n and_o that_o king_n be_v but_o as_o the_o moon_n to_o rule_v over_o the_o night_n that_o be_v say_v they_o over_o the_o laity_n but_o pope_n be_v no_o creature_n of_o god_n make_v king_n be_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n god_n himself_o have_v give_v testimony_n sufficient_a of_o their_o magnificence_n in_o that_o it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o change_v name_n with_o they_o and_o take_v their_o name_n to_o himself_o he_o be_v call_v a_o king_n and_o give_v they_o his_o own_o name_n in_o exchange_n for_o therefore_o he_o have_v say_v they_o be_v go_n i_o urge_v it_o the_o rather_o because_o of_o the_o inference_n that_o follow_v for_o the_o great_a king_n be_v the_o great_a christian_n be_v for_o christian_n be_v say_v to_o be_v king_n rev._n 1.6_o he_o have_v make_v we_o all_o king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o the_o mean_a and_o most_o abject_a christian_a a_o crown_n shall_v be_v give_v infinite_o far_o more_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a than_o the_o crown_n of_o all_o earthly_a king_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o sovereignty_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o crown_n be_v ensign_n of_o sovereignty_n as_o i_o hint_v before_o and_o sovereignty_n be_v a_o thing_n much_o account_v of_o to_o be_v but_o as_o the_o centurion_n be_v will_v put_v a_o spirit_n of_o ambition_n into_o we_o that_o we_o may_v have_v those_o under_o we_o to_o who_o when_o we_o say_v go_v they_o shall_v go_v when_o come_v they_o shall_v come_v when_o do_v this_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o if_o we_o can_v have_v not_o only_a person_n but_o province_n under_o our_o subjection_n and_o can_v make_v ourselves_o commander_n and_o ruler_n over_o country_n and_o kingdom_n so_o that_o people_n shall_v serve_v we_o and_o nation_n shall_v bow_v before_o we_o this_o will_v kindle_v a_o great_a fire_n of_o ambition_n in_o we_o it_o will_v make_v one_o that_o have_v the_o aspire_a mind_n of_o absalon_n to_o snatch_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o father_n head_n if_o we_o can_v climb_v high_o yet_o and_o get_v to_o be_v not_o only_o sovereign_n over_o divers_a province_n as_o ahasuerus_n be_v but_o also_o be_v monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o it_o be_v say_v alexander_n be_v so_o that_o the_o prince_n of_o all_o nation_n shall_v pay_v tribute_n to_o our_o coffer_n euripide_fw-la si_fw-la jus_o violandum_fw-la regni_fw-la causa_fw-la violandum_fw-la caesar_n ex_fw-la euripide_fw-la and_o the_o people_n of_o all_o country_n bow_v their_o knee_n before_o our_o footstool_n this_o if_o any_o thing_n will_v inflame_v our_o ambition_n and_o if_o at_o all_o for_o a_o kingdom_n one_o will_v violate_v the_o bond_n of_o nature_n or_o justice_n as_o one_o long_o ago_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v for_o such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o this_o he_o will_v be_v provoke_v to_o the_o do_v of_o it_o alas_o beloved_n all_o this_o be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o sovereignty_n belong_v to_o the_o heavenly_a crown_n and_o kingdom_n the_o poor_a saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v more_o glorious_a in_o sovereignty_n then_o ever_o ahasuerus_n or_o alexander_n be_v or_o then_o ever_o adam_n be_v when_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o look_v what_o be_v say_v of_o our_o saviour_n heb._n 2.8_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o subjection_n to_o he_o and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v subdue_v there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v out_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v subdue_v the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o every_o faithful_a member_n of_o christ_n they_o shall_v every_o one_o have_v a_o share_n in_o this_o rule_n and_o dominion_n even_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v bring_v under_o their_o subjection_n the_o very_a angel_n shall_v then_o be_v make_v subject_n to_o they_o where_o christ_n sit_v they_o shall_v sit_v who_o christ_n judge_v they_o shall_v judge_n and_o as_o christ_n reign_v they_o shall_v reign_v also_o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o safety_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o there_o be_v no_o crown_n so_o settle_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o any_o earthly_a prince_n as_o that_o he_o can_v promise_v to_o himself_o perpetual_a safety_n under_o it_o either_o safety_n from_o sickness_n and_o disease_n or_o safety_n from_o adversary_n and_o enemy_n either_o domestical_a or_o foreign_a but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o both_o king_n be_v as_o much_o in_o danger_n of_o sickness_n as_o other_o man_n for_o chair_n of_o state_n be_v not_o castle_n of_o health_n nor_o can_v their_o crown_n keep_v their_o head_n from_o ache_n they_o be_v as_o much_o in_o danger_n of_o enemy_n as_o other_o man_n nay_o they_o more_o than_o other_o every_o rail_a shimei_n have_v a_o tongue_n to_o bark_v at_o they_o every_o traitorous_a sheba_n will_v be_v blow_v trumpet_n of_o rebellion_n against_o they_o but_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n shall_v sit_v sure_a upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o faithful_a even_o with_o as_o much_o safety_n as_o majesty_n no_o sickness_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o blast_v it_o no_o enemy_n to_o endanger_v it_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o all_o our_o enemy_n shall_v be_v put_v under_o our_o foot_n 1_o cor._n 15.27_o and_o the_o prophet_n say_v all_o tear_n shall_v be_v wipe_v from_o our_o face_n isai_n 25.8_o 3._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o it_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n though_o they_o have_v a_o great_a many_o more_o honour_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o great_a many_o more_o burden_n than_o other_o man_n their_o crown_n be_v thick_a stick_v with_o care_n then_o with_o gem_n that_o make_v one_o of_o the_o emperor_n say_v when_o the_o imperial_a robe_n be_v bring_v he_o to_o put_v on_o oh_o nobilem_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la faelicem_fw-la pannum_fw-la oh_o here_o be_v a_o robe_n say_v he_o full_a of_o bravery_n than_o felicity_n it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n this_o crown_n be_v as_o free_v from_o trouble_n as_o from_o danger_n they_o that_o be_v crown_v with_o it_o be_v crown_v with_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o with_o honour_n it_o shall_v not_o disquiet_v they_o with_o care_n but_o give_v they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n rest_n and_o peace_n shall_v ever_o wait_v upon_o they_o who_o god_n shall_v vouchsafe_v so_o to_o dignify_v as_o to_o let_v their_o temple_n be_v impale_v with_o this_o glorious_a crown_n 4._o in_o respect_n of_o perpetuity_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n james_n 1.12_o because_o they_o that_o be_v crown_v with_o it_o shall_v never_o taste_v more_o of_o death_n herein_o again_o it_o differ_v from_o all_o earthly_a crown_n and_o excel_v as_o much_o as_o it_o differ_v earthly_a kingdom_n and_o crown_n be_v subject_a to_o alteration_n to_o dissipation_n job_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n sometime_o lose_v the_o collar_n of_o king_n job_n 12.13_o it_o be_v tell_v saul_n when_o he_o have_v be_v a_o while_n king_n over_o israel_n that_o god_n have_v rend_v his_o kingdom_n from_o he_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o neighbour_n 1_o sam._n 15.28_o but_o howsoever_o though_o the_o crown_n be_v not_o translate_v yet_o he_o that_o wear_v the_o crown_n must_v be_v translate_v death_n will_v translate_v the_o great_a prince_n to_o another_o place_n though_o while_o they_o live_v their_o crown_n be_v not_o translate_v to_o other_o person_n but_o sit_v fast_o upon_o their_o own_o head_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o this_o crown_n of_o life_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o alteration_n nor_o removal_n at_o all_o either_o from_o it_o to_o we_o or_o from_o we_o to_o it_o when_o once_o we_o shall_v have_v it_o confer_v upon_o we_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n never_o so_o full_a of_o glory_n and_o happiness_n yet_o what_o they_o want_v of_o perpetuity_n they_o want_v of_o perfect_a felicity_n there_o can_v be_v no_o perfection_n of_o blessedness_n but_o where_o there_o be_v perpetuity_n of_o continuance_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v here_o st._n paul_n call_v it_o a_o immarcessible_a crown_n st._n peter_n call_v it_o a_o immortal_a inheritance_n that_o shall_v never_o fade_v away_o 1_o pet._n 1.4_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n john_n 6._o that_o he_o that_o eat_v of_o it_o shall_v hunger_n no_o more_o and_o of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n john_n 4._o he_o that_o drink_v thereof_o shall_v thirst_v no_o more_o so_o i_o may_v say_v of_o this_o crown_n of_o life_n whosoever_o be_v crown_v with_o it_o he_o shall_v die_v no_o more_o how_o shall_v the_o consideration_n hereof_o make_v we_o to_o labour_v for_o this_o glorious_a crown_n what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o to_o see_v
what_o pain_n man_n will_v take_v for_o a_o little_a honour_n that_o come_v short_a of_o a_o kingdom_n what_o pain_n to_o satisfy_v their_o lust_n and_o to_o get_v a_o little_a of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v take_v so_o little_a pain_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o run_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o you_o may_v obtain_v not_o a_o corruptible_a 25._o 1_o cor._n 9.24_o 25._o but_o a_o incorruptible_a crown_n those_o that_o run_v for_o a_o corruptible_a crown_n they_o be_v temperate_a in_o all_o thing_n they_o eat_v and_o drink_v very_o little_a they_o diet_v their_o body_n they_o neither_o cumber_v their_o body_n with_o superfluous_a garment_n nor_o their_o stomach_n with_o superfluous_a meat_n and_o drink_n because_o these_o thing_n will_v hinder_v they_o in_o their_o contention_n and_o make_v they_o lose_v the_o crown_n and_o garland_n they_o run_v for_o now_o if_o there_o be_v so_o much_o strive_v for_o a_o fade_a crown_n how_o shall_v christian_n deny_v themselves_o strive_v for_o that_o crown_n of_o glory_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n a_o crown_n not_o make_v of_o ivory_n and_o laurel_n but_o make_v out_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n such_o as_o be_v not_o of_o a_o wither_a and_o fade_a nature_n here_o be_v not_o jus_o violandum_fw-la but_o only_o jugum_fw-la tolerandum_fw-la no_o law_n of_o obedience_n that_o we_o be_v to_o break_v but_o a_o yoke_n of_o patience_n that_o we_o must_v learn_v to_o bear_v to_o make_v we_o capable_a of_o this_o crown_n how_o shall_v this_o also_o stir_v up_o every_o christian_a to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o god_n who_o have_v call_v he_o to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n 1_o thes_n 2.11_o 12._o remember_v it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n we_o look_v after_o let_v we_o labour_n to_o have_v kingly_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o heavenly_a kingdom_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o lead_v heavenly_a conversation_n when_o one_o urge_v alexander_n to_o run_v at_o the_o olympian_a game_n he_o answer_v do_v king_n run_v there_o so_o when_o the_o devil_n or_o the_o world_n do_v tempt_v we_o to_o sin_n let_v we_o answer_v do_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v so_o the_o egyptian_n have_v a_o pretty_a hieroglyphic_n hieroglyph_n plerij_fw-la hieroglyph_n by_o which_o they_o describe_v a_o great_a man_n that_o be_v unworthy_o give_v they_o describe_v he_o by_o a_o elephant_n hunt_v for_o fly_n you_o may_v imagine_v what_o a_o unseemly_a sight_n that_o will_v be_v for_o so_o huge_a a_o creature_n as_o a_o elephant_n to_o hunt_v so_o poor_a a_o prey_n as_o a_o flie._n nothing_o be_v so_o unseemly_a or_o unworthy_a as_o for_o one_o that_o profess_v christianity_n to_o be_v vain_o or_o vicious_o give_v to_o be_v a_o earthworm_n a_o wanton_a a_o belly-god_n this_o be_v neither_o christianly_o nor_o become_v spiritual_a king_n show_v yourselves_o more_o heavenly_a dispose_v if_o you_o look_v for_o a_o heavenly_a kingdom_n heavenly_a thought_n heavenly_a desire_n heavenly_a speech_n and_o heavenly_a action_n do_v best_o become_v those_o that_o look_v for_o heavenly_a crown_n final_o let_v the_o thought_n of_o your_o high_a dignity_n comfort_v you_o o_o christian_n under_o all_o your_o sorrow_n so_o the_o roman_a emperor_n say_v to_o galba_n in_o his_o minority_n take_v he_o up_o by_o the_o chin_n tu_fw-la galba_n quandoque_fw-la imperium_fw-la degustabis_fw-la thou_o o_o galba_n shall_v one_o day_n be_v a_o emperor_n therefore_o be_v not_o sad_a so_o i_o may_v say_v to_o thou_o cheer_v up_o o_o disconsolate_a christian_a thou_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v a_o king_n and_o wear_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n think_v often_o of_o your_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n and_o drive_v away_o the_o sadness_n of_o your_o heart_n for_o ere_o long_o you_o shall_v be_v raise_v from_o a_o dunghill_n of_o misery_n to_o a_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o the_o great_a your_o suffering_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o bright_a and_o glorious_a will_v your_o crown_n be_v sect_n v._o furthermore_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n where_o the_o saint_n inheritance_n lie_v they_o be_v now_o heir_n of_o a_o kingdom_n but_o not_o inheritor_n but_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v that_o inheritance_n the_o scripture_n set_v forth_o what_o manner_n of_o inheritance_n heaven_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o saint_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o rich_a and_o glorious_a inheritance_n some_o inheritance_n on_o earth_n be_v so_o charge_v and_o clog_v that_o though_o the_o inheritance_n be_v rich_a yet_o the_o heir_n be_v poor_a and_o can_v hardly_o get_v a_o live_n out_o of_o it_o because_o though_o he_o receive_v much_o yet_o he_o pay_v much_o out_o of_o it_o again_o but_o here_o be_v no_o charge_n nor_o burden_n in_o any_o kind_n but_o this_o inheritance_n that_o be_v above_o be_v absolute_o free_a a_o rich_a and_o glorious_a inheritance_n he_o that_o be_v a_o heir_n of_o heaven_n never_o needs_o to_o trouble_v himself_o to_o grow_v rich_a in_o this_o world_n if_o his_o ancestor_n have_v leave_v he_o no_o possession_n say_v st._n augustine_n the_o man_n that_o love_v earthly_a riches_n have_v but_o little_a mind_n to_o the_o true_a riches_n to_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n and_o he_o that_o be_v besot_v with_o the_o delight_n of_o this_o present_a world_n never_o dream_v of_o the_o everlasting_a pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o he_o that_o have_v god_n for_o his_o portion_n may_v say_v with_o david_n the_o line_n be_v fall_v to_o i_o in_o pleasant_a place_n yea_o i_o have_v a_o goodly_a inheritage_n psal_n 16.6_o god_n comprehend_v all_o imaginable_a perfection_n nothing_o be_v disperse_v in_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v not_o recollect_v in_o the_o creator_n in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o thing_n in_o god_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v want_v to_o he_o that_o enjoy_v all_o thing_n for_o in_o he_o be_v a_o conservation_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v true_o and_o solid_o good_a in_o heaven_n god_n himself_o shall_v be_v our_o rich_a and_o glorious_a inheritance_n and_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a advantage_n we_o shall_v reap_v in_o glory_n be_v that_o god_n will_v be_v to_o we_o instead_o of_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o find_v in_o he_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o our_o desire_n we_o shall_v there_o meet_v with_o our_o perfect_a happiness_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o inheritance_n of_o inconceivable_a excellency_n our_o inheritance_n be_v so_o excellent_a that_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o form_v a_o idea_n of_o it_o we_o want_v word_n to_o express_v its_o excellency_n and_o indeed_o this_o may_v impose_v silence_n upon_o we_o if_o the_o liberty_n we_o have_v to_o speak_v of_o god_n though_o incomprehensible_a do_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o speak_v and_o write_v of_o this_o glorious_a inheritance_n the_o blessedness_n whereof_o be_v unconceivable_a and_o as_o when_o treat_v of_o god_n perfection_n when_o we_o follow_v the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o can_v fail_v so_o if_o we_o sail_v by_o the_o same_o star_n we_o can_v wander_v in_o this_o vast_a ocean_n of_o glory_n and_o this_o be_v sure_a we_o need_v not_o fear_v shipwreck_n on_o a_o sea_n where_o all_o that_o be_v drown_v may_v boast_v themselves_o happy_a 3._o it_o be_v a_o incorruptible_a inheritance_n a_o inheritance_n that_o never_o fade_v away_o 1_o pet._n 1.4_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o beauty_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o metaphor_n take_v from_o flower_n the_o grass_n wither_v the_o flower_n fade_v but_o this_o inheritance_n never_o fade_v all_o creature_n that_o be_v make_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n but_o this_o heaven_n at_o the_o first_o be_v not_o make_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n but_o for_o god_n himself_o therefore_o it_o be_v incorruptible_a what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o that_o we_o can_v ride_v and_o run_v for_o a_o lease_n of_o two_o or_o three_o year_n but_o the_o inheritance_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o be_v not_o esteem_v by_o we_o and_o as_o this_o inheritance_n be_v incorruptible_a so_o likewise_o it_o be_v undefiled_a in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o any_o abuse_n of_o the_o creature_n no_o unclean_a thing_n enter_v into_o it_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o immortal_a inheritance_n though_o a_o christian_n life_n be_v subject_a to_o change_v and_o his_o day_n upon_o earth_n must_v have_v a_o end_n yet_o his_o inheritance_n abide_v for_o ever_o yea_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n of_o his_o people_n who_o fill_v their_o desire_n perfect_v all_o the_o power_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o communicate_v himself_o so_o free_o and_o so_o full_o to_o his_o child_n that_o they_o be_v abundant_o satisfy_v god_n be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o people_n to_o eternity_n and_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n to_o style_v he_o so_o 32._o august_n in_o psal_n
merit_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o order_n because_o as_o wage_n be_v usual_o give_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o labour_n so_o this_o reward_n be_v give_v at_o the_o end_n of_o our_o day_n be_v thou_o faithful_a to_o the_o death_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n rev._n 2.10_o 5._o in_o regard_n of_o faith_n that_o look_v at_o salvation_n as_o the_o end_n and_o wage_n of_o all_o her_o labour_n st._n peter_n write_v to_o those_o of_o the_o dispersion_n speak_v of_o their_o receive_v the_o end_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n 1_o pet._n 1.9_o object_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v this_o reward_n be_v conditional_a rom._n 8.17_o that_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v reign_v with_o he_o where_o merit_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v sol._n i_o answer_v the_o condition_n note_v out_o there_o the_o order_n not_o the_o cause_n of_o reign_v which_o may_v serve_v to_o comfort_v we_o in_o affliction_n luke_n 17.7_o 8._o now_o i_o shall_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o this_o reward_n be_v a_o reward_n of_o mercy_n not_o out_o of_o merit_n for_o 1._o in_o a_o merit_n there_o must_v be_v relatio_fw-la muneris_fw-la &_o remunerati_fw-la a_o relation_n between_o our_o give_v to_o god_n and_o his_o give_v to_o we_o and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o infinite_a god_n to_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o we_o we_o can_v give_v nothing_o to_o he_o but_o what_o at_o first_o come_v from_o he_o as_o david_n speak_v 1_o chron._n 29.11_o 14._o who_o have_v first_o give_v to_o god_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v recompense_v to_o he_o again_o rom._n 11.35_o 2._o the_o obedience_n perform_v must_v be_v materia_fw-la indebita_fw-la to_o make_v it_o meritorious_a but_o we_o be_v every_o way_n bind_v to_o god_n we_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o creation_n to_o be_v serviceable_a to_o he_o by_o nature_n we_o owe_v he_o our_o service_n from_o who_o we_o receive_v our_o be_v we_o be_v also_o bind_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o redemption_n we_o be_v none_o of_o our_o own_o but_o his_o that_o have_v ransom_v we_o and_o therefore_o whole_o uncapable_a of_o merit_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n every_o meritorious_a work_n must_v be_v free_a proceed_v from_o our_o own_o mere_a good_a pleasure_n it_o must_v not_o be_v a_o duty_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v now_o all_o that_o we_o do_v or_o suffer_v be_v but_o duty_n command_v by_o god_n and_o we_o stand_v bind_v under_o many_o obligation_n to_o do_v they_o work_n of_o duty_n can_v merit_v 3._o every_o meritorious_a work_n must_v be_v a_o man_n be_v own_o proper_a work_n now_o the_o good_a we_o do_v be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o of_o god_n that_o give_v we_o the_o ability_n of_o perform_v it_o it_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v and_o suffer_v to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n phil._n 1.29_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v phil._n 2.13_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o and_o for_o we_o isai_n 26.12_o we_o be_v infinite_o indebt_v to_o god_n for_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o god_n and_o the_o give_v of_o one_o gift_n be_v a_o obligation_n that_o therefore_o one_o shall_v give_v another_o ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la 4._o in_o a_o merit_n the_o work_n do_v must_v bear_v proportion_n with_o the_o reward_n now_o what_o be_v the_o give_v of_o a_o mite_n or_o penny_n to_o the_o purchase_n of_o a_o kingdom_n what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o a_o infinite_a reward_n and_o a_o finite_a work_n a_o eternal_a reward_n and_o a_o temporary_a work_n such_o be_v our_o work_n such_o be_v god_n reward_n so_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n luke_n 17.10_o when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v you_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v 5._o there_o be_v so_o much_o defect_n in_o our_o best_a work_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v merit_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o justice_n for_o who_o can_v think_v they_o shall_v deserve_v punishment_n out_o of_o justice_n and_o merit_v a_o reward_n out_o of_o justice_n too_o that_o work_n which_o merit_v must_v be_v perfect_o perfect_a there_o must_v be_v no_o flaw_n not_o a_o shadow_n of_o privative_a imperfection_n in_o it_o if_o god_n shall_v be_v extreme_a to_o mark_v what_o we_o have_v do_v amiss_o hell_n will_v be_v the_o reward_n ●our_n best_o work_v now_o though_o glory_n be_v call_v a_o ●eward_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a gift_n of_o grace_n eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 6.23_o christ_n say_v of_o his_o sheep_n i_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n john_n 10.28_o it_o be_v call_v both_o a_o gift_n and_o a_o reward_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la and_o in_o respect_n it_o be_v call_v a_o reward_n but_o simple_o and_o absolute_o meriti●_n abbot_n de_fw-fr meriti●_n it_o be_v only_o a_o gift_n compare_v eternal_a life_n to_o the_o work_n and_o look_v no_o further_o so_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o a_o reward_n but_o consider_v the_o original_n from_o whence_o the_o work_n itself_o also_o proceed_v and_o all_o be_v mere_o and_o whole_o gift_n say_v learned_a bishop_n abbot_n 6._o hereby_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v make_v of_o no_o validity_n christ_n have_v merit_v for_o we_o to_o the_o uttermost_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v contribute_v by_o we_o because_o he_o have_v do_v it_o alone_o so_o then_o eternal_a life_n follow_v upon_o a_o holy_a life_n not_o as_o remunerate_v from_o any_o merit_n of_o we_o but_o as_o confer_v in_o much_o mercy_n by_o god_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n i_o shall_v now_o show_v that_o the_o reward_n in_o heaven_n be_v a_o great_a reward_n aquinas_n on_o matth._n 5.11_o ●6_n aquin._n suppl_n 3._o portis_fw-la quaest_a ●6_n assign_v to_o three_o order_n of_o glorify_a saint_n namely_o to_o virgin_n doctor_n and_o martyr_n a_o special_a crown_n of_o glory_n excel_v in_o glory_n the_o crown_n of_o other_o saint_n i_o shall_v spend_v time_n but_o to_o little_a purpose_n shall_v i_o tell_v you_o the_o idle_a figment_n of_o the_o schoolman_n about_o these_o crown_n as_o that_o the_o virgin_n shall_v have_v a_o white_a crown_n the_o doctor_n a_o green_a crown_n the_o martyr_n a_o red_a crown_n such_o hay_n straw_n and_o stubble_n have_v the_o overcurious_a head_n of_o the_o schoolman_n lay_v upon_o this_o foundation_n i_o shall_v wave_v this_o and_o show_v you_o how_o the_o reward_n in_o heaven_n be_v call_v a_o great_a reward_n i._o it_o be_v great_a absolute_o in_o itself_o consider_v the_o great_a god_n himself_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o his_o saint_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v their_o reward_n we_o shall_v count_v a_o earthly_a kingdom_n a_o great_a reward_n much_o more_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v a_o vast_a reward_n indeed_o but_o what_o be_v all_o the_o world_n and_o the_o kingdom_n thereof_o in_o comparison_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v but_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o a_o bucket_n compare_v to_o the_o sea_n the_o dust_n in_o the_o balance_n compare_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n compare_v to_o the_o sun_n there_o be_v some_o comparison_n in_o these_o for_o both_o be_v finite_a but_o there_o be_v no_o proportion_n between_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n perfection_n of_o holiness_n perfection_n of_o glory_n perfection_n of_o joy_n perfection_n of_o pleasure_n be_v this_o great_a reward_n ii_o consider_v the_o property_n of_o this_o reward_n and_o you_o will_v see_v it_o be_v a_o great_a reward_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a reward_n far_o above_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o eye_n it_o can_v comprehensive_o behold_v it_o the_o ear_n can_v hear_v the_o greatness_n of_o it_o the_o heart_n can_v conceive_v it_o be_v the_o sea_n ink_n and_o the_o heaven_n parchment_n and_o all_o angel_n and_o man_n set_v on_o work_n to_o delineate_v the_o greatness_n of_o it_o they_o can_v not_o describe_v it_o the_o reward_n be_v great_a according_a as_o god_n be_v and_o who_o know_v how_o great_a he_o be_v 2._o it_o be_v a_o all-sufficient_a and_o all-satisfying_a reward_n why_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v it_o after_o so_o many_o name_n sometime_o call_v it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o sight_n of_o god_n a_o crown_n a_o crown_n of_o life_n joy_n river_n of_o pleasure_n sometime_o a_o supper_n the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n white_a robe_n paradise_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v so_o great_a that_o one_o expression_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o describe_v it_o it_o be_v a_o
vehement_a affection_n and_o take_v they_o home_o to_o his_o own_o house_n after_o a_o tedious_a pilgrimage_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o they_o have_v meet_v with_o harsh_a unkind_a usage_n how_o do_v jacob_n tender_a benjamin_n that_o he_o will_v not_o let_v he_o go_v from_o he_o till_o he_o be_v force_v to_o it_o and_o see_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o but_o his_o joy_n be_v not_o express_v upon_o his_o return_n because_o he_o hear_v that_o his_o belove_a joseph_n be_v alive_a and_o when_o he_o see_v the_o wagon_n and_o charet_n that_o joseph_n have_v send_v to_o fetch_v he_o and_o his_o family_n into_o egypt_n oh_o than_o it_o be_v inconceivable_a and_o inexpressible_a with_o what_o affection_n our_o heavenly_a father_n will_v take_v home_o his_o child_n to_o his_o everlasting_a habitation_n when_o they_o be_v of_o full_a age_n and_o ready_a to_o receive_v their_o inheritance_n moreover_o they_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o what_o abundance_n of_o love_n think_v you_o will_v god_n receive_v the_o saint_n when_o they_o be_v perfume_v all_o over_o with_o sweet_a odour_n from_o heaven_n with_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n the_o spirit_n here_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o divine_a gift_n for_o be_v the_o prime_n radical_a donation_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n there_o be_v no_o grace_n he_o confer_v upon_o we_o which_o bear_v not_o the_o image_n of_o this_o first_o and_o prime_a gratuity_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o pandora_n through_o which_o all_o other_o blessing_n be_v bestow_v upon_o we_o now_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o sanctify_v those_o who_o christ_n have_v redeem_v and_o to_o preserve_v they_o to_o god_n heavenly_a kingdom_n who_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o deliver_v from_o everlasting_a destruction_n god_n manifest_v much_o love_n to_o his_o people_n on_o earth_n in_o that_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o his_o saint_n when_o it_o be_v often_o grieve_v by_o they_o yet_o will_v not_o leave_v nor_o quit_v his_o old_a habitation_n what_o abundance_n of_o love_n then_o will_v he_o express_v to_o they_o when_o he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o they_o that_o be_v contrary_a or_o displease_v to_o he_o beside_o the_o saint_n be_v espouse_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o great_a day_n wherein_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v to_o glory_n shall_v be_v the_o full_a consummation_n of_o the_o marriage_n oh_o what_o abundance_n of_o love_n will_v the_o lord_n jesus_n express_v to_o his_o bride_n when_o she_o shall_v be_v bring_v home_o to_o he_o after_o a_o long_a time_n of_o separation_n one_o from_o another_o with_o gladness_n and_o rejoice_v shall_v they_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o king_n palace_n psal_n 45.15_o though_o the_o church_n sigh_v here_o below_o she_o know_v her_o beloved_n will_v keep_v his_o word_n that_o have_v have_v a_o part_n in_o his_o sorrow_n she_o shall_v have_v a_o share_n in_o his_o heavenly_a triumph_n oh_o how_o shall_v the_o countenance_n of_o the_o glorious_a son_n of_o righteousness_n cheer_v the_o heart_n of_o god_n people_n at_o the_o last_o day_n with_o abundance_n of_o joy_n when_o he_o that_o be_v a_o universal_a friend_n shall_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o gracious_a lord_n of_o a_o love_a father_n and_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o love_a brother_n epictet_n tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la qui_fw-la conjux_fw-la pariter_fw-la scaterque_fw-la paterque_fw-la tu_fw-la dominus_fw-la tu_fw-la vir_fw-la tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la prater_n eris_fw-la ovid._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arrian_n in_o epictet_n of_o a_o head_n of_o a_o husband_n of_o a_o root_n and_o be_v every_o thing_n to_o we_o methinks_v the_o serious_a consideration_n hereof_o shall_v be_v a_o forcible_a attractive_a to_o draw_v sinner_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o receive_v he_o into_o their_o heart_n by_o faith_n whatsoever_o offer_v the_o devil_n can_v make_v they_o or_o whatsoever_o entertainment_n they_o may_v have_v from_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o name_n to_o the_o magnificent_a and_o sumptuous_a entertainment_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v give_v to_o his_o spouse_n at_o the_o last_o day_n oh_o what_o a_o feast_n will_v christ_n make_v for_o all_o his_o child_n when_o he_o shall_v bring_v they_o all_o together_o into_o the_o house_n of_o his_o father_n and_o if_o that_o word_n be_v too_o straight_o into_o the_o city_n of_o the_o great_a king_n and_o if_o that_o be_v too_o straight_o into_o the_o world_n to_o come_v where_o there_o shall_v be_v room_n enough_o for_o they_o all_o what_o comfort_n may_v the_o meditation_n hereof_o afford_v to_o you_o that_o be_v poor_a christian_n that_o be_v now_o the_o outcast_n of_o the_o world_n know_v you_o though_o the_o world_n exclude_v you_o yet_o heaven_n will_v receive_v you_o though_o the_o world_n afford_v you_o no_o houseroom_n but_o shut_v you_o out_o of_o door_n yet_o the_o everlasting_a gate_n shall_v be_v open_v to_o you_o and_o god_n shall_v take_v you_o into_o his_o own_o house_n yea_o into_o his_o own_o bosom_n you_o have_v a_o father_n in_o heaven_n his_o house_n be_v rich_o furnish_v and_o there_o you_o shall_v be_v sumptuous_o and_o royal_o entertain_v though_o the_o world_n refuse_v to_o feed_v you_o with_o the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o their_o table_n yet_o you_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o christ_n at_o his_o table_n in_o his_o kingdom_n yea_o he_o shall_v be_v your_o meat_n and_o drink_n who_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o the_o wellspring_n of_o salvation_n the_o lord_n will_v think_v nothing_o he_o have_v too_o dear_a for_o you_o but_o you_o shall_v have_v part_n with_o jesus_n christ_n and_o share_v with_o he_o in_o all_o his_o enjoyment_n i_o have_v read_v of_o cyrus_n who_o never_o like_v any_o dish_n of_o meat_n but_o he_o send_v a_o part_n of_o it_o from_o his_o table_n to_o his_o friend_n he_o love_v most_o yea_o sometime_o the_o very_a bread_n and_o meat_n he_o have_v upon_o his_o own_o trencher_n with_o this_o kind_n and_o friendly_a salutation_n cyrus_n tibi_fw-la ista_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsi_fw-la fuerint_fw-la jucundissima_fw-la king_n cyrus_n send_v you_o this_o because_o he_o like_v it_o best_a himself_n and_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v most_o choice_a and_o dainty_a so_o the_o lord_n will_v entertain_v his_o people_n with_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o felicity_n whereupon_o st._n bernard_n have_v this_o expression_n non_fw-la aurum_fw-la pollicetur_fw-la dominus_fw-la the_o lord_n do_v not_o promise_v gold_n nor_o silver_n nor_o precious_a stone_n but_o himself_o he_o will_v be_v their_o substantial_a joy_n and_o everlasting_a comfort_n what_o tongue_n or_o pen_n be_v able_a to_o set_v forth_o that_o large_a and_o kind_a entertainment_n that_o god_n will_v give_v to_o his_o child_n on_o that_o day_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n like_o a_o faithful_a shepherd_n conduct_v all_o his_o flock_n to_o the_o fold_n which_o be_v ordain_v for_o they_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o like_o a_o valiant_a general_n and_o triumphant_a conqueror_n ride_v in_o the_o heaven_n in_o the_o head_n of_o his_o troop_n and_o glorious_a train_n who_o shall_v follow_v he_o with_o crown_n on_o their_o head_n and_o palm_n branch_n in_o their_o hand_n oh_o the_o shouting_n oh_o the_o song_n of_o joy_n and_o volley_n of_o praise_n and_o hallelujah_n that_o shall_v fill_v the_o world_n in_o that_o great_a and_o glorious_a day_n when_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n luke_n 9.26_o chap._n xv._o sect_n i._o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o saint_n glory_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o circumstance_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v more_o particular_o the_o substance_n of_o that_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n which_o the_o glorify_a saint_n shall_v possess_v in_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o first_o in_o their_o body_n but_o before_o i_o speak_v of_o that_o glory_n which_o god_n will_v put_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o it_o and_o lead_v unto_o it_o viz._n the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n however_o god_n child_n be_v subject_a to_o death_n as_o well_o as_o other_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v again_o to_o a_o state_n of_o blessedness_n and_o their_o body_n shall_v be_v reunite_v to_o their_o soul_n for_o 1._o god_n have_v decree_v it_o and_o it_o shall_v certain_o come_v to_o pass_v john_n 6.39_o 40._o christ_n say_v this_o be_v the_o father_n will_n which_o have_v send_v i_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o but_o shall_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o
his_o body_n after_o his_o resurrection_n but_o retain_v the_o essential_a as_o longitude_n latitude_n circumscription_n etc._n etc._n sect_n iv_o but_o will_v you_o see_v the_o manifold_a proof_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n if_o you_o will_v turn_v over_o the_o note_n of_o time_n you_o may_v believe_v that_o pharaoh_n as_o about_o that_o time_n of_o the_o year_n when_o christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a be_v invade_v by_o a_o host_n of_o wave_n which_o conquer_a his_o charet_n make_v he_o without_o wheel_n to_o hurry_v fast_o into_o hell_n while_o moses_n lead_v his_o israel_n through_o the_o wilderness_n of_o the_o sea_n pass_v through_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n in_o the_o monument_n of_o water_n do_v not_o our_o lord_n also_o leave_v his_o tomb_n without_o a_o equal_a and_o contrary_a wonder_n then_o the_o water_n seem_v to_o be_v firm_a rise_v into_o alps_n as_o now_o the_o earth_n be_v make_v to_o quake_v like_o the_o water_n and_o well_o may_v the_o earth_n tremble_v when_o the_o lord_n conquer_v it_o and_o forsake_v it_o the_o angel_n too_o make_v a_o little_a earthquake_n in_o the_o grave_a when_o he_o remove_v the_o mighty_a stone_n with_o which_o the_o senseless_a jew_n try_v to_o oppress_v our_o saviour_n after_o death_n as_o if_o he_o will_v have_v seal_v he_o up_o to_o a_o utter_a impossibility_n of_o rise_v again_o the_o earth_n now_o move_v and_o dance_v for_o his_o exaltation_n and_o the_o stone_n give_v place_n to_o his_o omnipotency_n the_o angel_n have_v open_v the_o tomb_n shall_v we_o look_v into_o the_o place_n whence_o christ_n be_v rise_v but_o behold_v he_o be_v not_o there_o to_o be_v find_v a_o angel_n supply_v his_o place_n which_o he_o have_v conquer_v to_o obedience_n as_o if_o he_o have_v mean_v to_o rest_v himself_o in_o triumph_n after_o the_o conflict_n of_o his_o miracle_n his_o raiment_n white_a as_o snow_n which_o he_o do_v imitate_v in_o purity_n his_o countenance_n be_v like_o lightning_n but_o more_o wonderful_a for_o that_o be_v of_o so_o instant_a a_o terror_n that_o it_o be_v rather_o the_o object_n of_o our_o memory_n then_o our_o eye_n but_o this_o with_o a_o courteous_a majesty_n be_v patient_a to_o be_v behold_v the_o terrify_a woman_n quick_o behold_v this_o sight_n be_v encourage_v by_o the_o angel_n but_o first_o by_o their_o innocence_n the_o soldier_n behold_v it_o too_o but_o with_o such_o guilty_a faintness_n that_o they_o seem_v as_o much_o to_o disgrace_v their_o sex_n as_o their_o profession_n disarm_v themselves_o at_o once_o both_o of_o their_o weapon_n and_o soul_n together_o they_o become_v as_o breathless_a carcase_n and_o be_v rather_o the_o captive_n than_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o grave_a but_o now_o the_o woman_n be_v comfort_v they_o receive_v a_o commission_n from_o the_o angel_n to_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o out_o of_o the_o tomb_n they_o hasten_v with_o the_o confuse_a speed_n of_o fear_n and_o joy_n and_o while_o they_o seek_v the_o disciple_n they_o find_v their_o saviour_n himself_o who_o comfort_v they_o with_o his_o presence_n and_o speech_n and_o again_o send_v they_o to_o teach_v his_o own_o disciple_n and_o to_o show_v their_o obedience_n to_o be_v as_o quick_a as_o their_o love_n they_o depart_v from_o christ_n to_o their_o duty_n and_o speedy_o find_v peter_n and_o john_n for_o their_o auditor_n who_o no_o soon_o hear_v the_o news_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n but_o they_o run_v as_o fast_o to_o the_o tomb_n as_o the_o woman_n run_v from_o it_o where_o no_o soon_o be_v they_o enter_v but_o they_o perceive_v christ_n victory_n over_o death_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o linen_n clothes_n his_o spoil_n of_o death_n and_o these_o spoil_n too_o have_v be_v divide_v the_o napkin_n off_o his_o head_n be_v lay_v up_o by_o itself_o it_o seem_v the_o angel_n at_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n attend_v to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o it_o to_o the_o woman_n and_o to_o leave_v a_o testimony_n of_o it_o to_o the_o disciple_n thus_o that_o he_o be_v not_o steal_v away_o as_o be_v give_v out_o appear_v by_o the_o inconvenience_n and_o leisure_n of_o his_o undress_v and_o by_o the_o method_n of_o the_o linen_n which_o the_o affright_a policy_n of_o the_o soldier_n do_v no_o more_o touch_n than_o observe_v and_o they_o no_o more_o observe_v it_o then_o the_o woman_n who_o after_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o angel_n have_v their_o eye_n as_o much_o amaze_v as_o their_o mind_n the_o soldier_n too_o do_v more_o tremble_n than_o watch_n but_o the_o disciple_n have_v less_o fear_n and_o more_o time_n beside_o they_o learn_v somewhat_o which_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v and_o can_v now_o teach_v the_o woman_n this_o news_n of_o the_o grave_a lo_o here_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n who_o almighty_a strength_n vouchsafe_v to_o couch_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_a and_o lo_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o love_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o sloth_n of_o the_o grave_a will_v you_o behold_v how_o he_o be_v raise_v behold_v how_o the_o potter_n work_v upon_o the_o wheel_n he_o take_v clay_n he_o make_v it_o a_o vessel_n and_o this_o vessel_n be_v make_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n he_o make_v it_o again_o as_o he_o best_o please_v christ_n be_v immortal_a clay_n and_o earth_n pure_a than_o heaven_n when_o by_o the_o wonder_n of_o omnipotency_n the_o creator_n and_o creature_n be_v make_v into_o one_o and_o of_o one_o matter_n do_v consist_v both_o the_o potter_n and_o his_o pot_n from_o this_o break_a clay_n there_o do_v arise_v the_o same_o and_o a_o renew_a christ_n can_v any_o man_n in_o this_o point_n be_v yet_o a_o infidel_n if_o any_o can_v see_v how_o he_o convert_v they_o he_o let_v thomas_n disgrace_v himself_o to_o a_o belief_n and_o by_o his_o distrust_n merciful_o and_o miraculous_o increase_v his_o faith_n can_v any_o body_n doubt_v he_o be_v renew_v in_o a_o body_n of_o glory_n when_o he_o be_v full_a of_o god_n have_v he_o not_o a_o glorious_a body_n who_o the_o door_n that_o be_v shut_v when_o he_o enter_v to_o his_o disciple_n do_v obedient_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n &_o though_o he_o be_v patient_a under_o death_n three_o day_n yet_o since_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o be_v spend_v before_o he_o die_v and_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o last_o after_o he_o revive_v there_o be_v the_o number_n but_o not_o the_o length_n of_o three_o day_n and_o thus_o he_o make_v so_o short_a a_o change_n as_o seem_v rather_o a_o sleep_n then_o death_n he_o rise_v not_o soon_o lest_o he_o may_v have_v be_v think_v not_o to_o b●_n f●lly_o dead_a he_o lay_v no_o long_o lest_o he_o may_v have_v be_v think_v to_o have_v see_v corruption_n this_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n as_o his_o birth_n life_n death_n burial_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v true_a man_n it_o be_v his_o own_o argument_n against_o the_o jew_n destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o john_n 2.19_o and_o st._n paul_n among_o other_o thing_n tell_v we_o he_o be_v declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a rom._n 1.4_o methinks_v this_o may_v have_v stop_v the_o black_a mouth_n of_o the_o blasphemous_a jew_n who_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o execution_n bid_v he_o come_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n and_o save_v himself_o and_o they_o will_v believe_v on_o he_o matth._n 27.42_o which_o though_o he_o will_v not_o do_v yet_o here_o he_o do_v a_o great_a matter_n gregor_n plus_fw-fr fuit_fw-la ex_fw-la sepulchro_fw-la resurgere_fw-la quam_fw-la de_fw-fr cruse_n descendere_fw-la gregor_n to_o rise_v be_v more_o say_v gregory_n to_o rise_v again_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n then_o to_o descend_v from_o the_o cross_n this_o likewise_o declare_v his_o dominion_n over_o sin_n death_n hell_n and_o all_o enemy_n christ_n therefore_o die_v rise_v again_o and_o revive_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o live_a if_o he_o have_v die_v and_o not_o rise_v again_o then_o have_v he_o at_o least_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v conquer_v and_o overcome_v death_n but_o to_o have_v be_v foil_v in_o the_o field_n and_o overcome_v of_o death_n and_o then_o how_o can_v he_o have_v be_v the_o death_n of_o death_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o grave_a and_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n hosea_n 13.14_o this_o likewise_o show_v we_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n and_o he_o to_o be_v a_o absolute_a and_o all-sufficient_a saviour_n whereof_o we_o may_v have_v doubt_v have_v he_o only_o die_v for_o we_o think_v not_o a_o man_n debt_n then_o pay_v when_o he_o or_o his_o surety_n go_v
more_o set_v forth_o the_o thankfulness_n of_o the_o labourer_n and_o these_o the_o magnificence_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o you_o will_v take_v the_o word_n of_o the_o rabbin_n who_o in_o story_n of_o custom_n we_o have_v no_o more_o cause_n to_o distrust_v then_o to_o feign_v they_o will_v tell_v you_o when_o the_o husbandman_n carry_v up_o those_o fruit_n to_o the_o holy_a city_n he_o have_v a_o bull_n go_v before_o he_o who_o horn_n be_v guild_v and_o a_o olive-garland_n upon_o his_o head_n this_o be_v the_o picture_n of_o his_o master_n affection_n and_o state_n as_o if_o by_o the_o impetuous_a beast_n he_o will_v express_v the_o courage_n of_o his_o joy_n by_o guild_a horn_n the_o riches_n of_o his_o plenty_n and_o by_o the_o olive-garland_n the_o crown_n of_o peace_n behold_v the_o display_a heraldry_n of_o his_o happiness_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v increase_v by_o applause_n a_o pipe_n play_v before_o he_o to_o charge_v all_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o until_o they_o come_v to_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o these_o first-fruit_n be_v likewise_o pay_v at_o our_o great_a resurrection_n shall_v they_o not_o be_v bring_v to_o our_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n the_o city_n of_o the_o great_a king_n shall_v they_o not_o have_v angel_n go_v before_o they_o shall_v there_o not_o likewise_o be_v crown_n and_o shall_v they_o not_o likewise_o be_v usher_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o trumpet_n it_o be_v the_o sound_n that_o the_o jew_n use_v at_o their_o brave_a funeral_n and_o may_v it_o not_o then_o fit_o be_v use_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v awake_v from_o their_o tomb_n till_o christ_n be_v rise_v those_o that_o be_v bury_v be_v dead_a but_o if_o we_o once_o but_o name_v he_o the_o first-fruit_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v let_v we_o no_o more_o say_v that_o they_o be_v dead_a but_o that_o they_o sleep_v yet_o all_o before_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v not_o sleep_v some_o instead_o of_o rise_v shall_v be_v only_o new_a dress_v by_o be_v clothe_v with_o incorruption_n and_o so_o have_v rather_o a_o change_n of_o raiment_n then_o of_o life_n they_o shall_v not_o put_v off_o their_o body_n but_o their_o mortality_n and_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o christ_n both_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o glory_n the_o eutychian_a shall_v then_o confess_v that_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n be_v not_o mix_v though_o join_v and_o that_o his_o humanity_n though_o exalt_v be_v not_o change_v the_o pythagorean_n shall_v then_o recover_v the_o possession_n and_o acquaintance_n of_o his_o vagabond_n soul_n the_o sadduce_v shall_v then_o rise_v in_o that_o body_n in_o which_o he_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o body_n see_v the_o error_n of_o his_o soul_n the_o ubiquitary_a shall_v then_o see_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v see_v and_o it_o shall_v certain_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o everywhere_o by_o be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o grave_n whence_o it_o be_v rise_v that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n for_o otherwise_o as_o he_o be_v god_n he_o be_v there_o and_o in_o all_o other_o place_n of_o the_o world_n chap._n xvi_o sect_n i._o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o first_o of_o the_o beauty_n and_o clarity_n of_o glorify_a body_n but_o now_o to_o speak_v more_o particular_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o body_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 15.43_o the_o body_n be_v sow_o in_o dishonour_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o glory_n that_o which_o be_v here_o call_v glory_n be_v by_o divine_n general_o term_v clarity_n and_o this_o no_o way_n vary_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o vers_fw-la 41_o 42._o he_o say_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n body_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n shall_v be_v different_a and_o divers_a one_o exceed_v another_o in_o clarity_n as_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n so_o shall_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v st._n paul_n say_v in_o phil._n 3.21_o christ_n shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o fashion_v they_o like_v unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n this_o be_v very_o admirable_a that_o a_o poor_a sinful_a creature_n shall_v be_v so_o change_v transform_v exalt_a as_o to_o be_v like_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n our_o body_n now_o be_v but_o as_o loathsome_a carcase_n what_o a_o vile_a body_n have_v job_n when_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o dunghill_n what_o a_o vile_a body_n have_v lazarus_n when_o he_o lie_v at_o the_o rich_a man_n gate_n full_a of_o sore_n when_o child_n be_v young_a break_v out_o in_o the_o face_n in_o hand_n and_o body_n there_o be_v no_o beauty_n in_o they_o so_o sin_n break_v out_o in_o these_o mortal_a body_n and_o make_v they_o ugly_a in_o god_n eye_n there_o be_v many_o corporal_a imperfection_n in_o man_n body_n now_o but_o when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v than_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v as_o his_o body_n beautiful_a and_o glorious_a tradition_n uphold_v by_o reason_n teach_v we_o that_o he_o be_v beautiful_a without_o art_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o form_v his_o body_n in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n will_v have_v it_o adorn_v with_o comeliness_n he_o consecrate_a beauty_n in_o his_o person_n when_o he_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o though_o he_o assume_v the_o pain_n of_o sin_n he_o will_v not_o assume_v the_o ugliness_n thereof_o and_o as_o there_o be_v no_o ignorance_n in_o his_o soul_n so_o be_v there_o no_o deformity_n in_o his_o body_n his_o very_a type_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v all_o comely_a david_n and_o solomon_n the_o one_o of_o which_o represent_v his_o victory_n the_o other_o his_o triumph_n be_v both_o of_o they_o famous_a for_o their_o beauty_n the_o angel_n take_v upon_o they_o his_o visage_n when_o they_o treat_v with_o the_o prophet_n while_o they_o speak_v in_o his_o name_n they_o will_v appear_v in_o his_o form_n jacob_n have_v the_o honour_n to_o see_v he_o when_o he_o wrestle_v with_o he_o before_o the_o break_n of_o day_n the_o three_o child_n that_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n see_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flame_n but_o how_o glorious_o do_v the_o face_n of_o christ_n shine_v at_o his_o transfiguration_n christ_n face_n do_v shine_v upon_o earth_n and_o now_o in_o heaven_n do_v shine_v like_o the_o sun_n and_o our_o saviour_n intimate_v that_o the_o righteous_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o their_o father_n matth._n 13.43_o lazarus_n his_o body_n shall_v be_v a_o beautiful_a body_n he_o shall_v have_v no_o imperfection_n samson_n shall_v then_o have_v his_o eye_n which_o the_o philistine_n pull_v out_o mephibosheth_n shall_v not_o be_v lame_a in_o heaven_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o imperfection_n in_o a_o glorify_a body_n the_o scripture_n mention_v some_o person_n eminent_a for_o beauty_n as_o david_n joseph_n and_o especial_o absalon_n who_o though_o he_o have_v a_o deform_a soul_n yet_o for_o his_o outside_n be_v without_o blemish_n and_o have_v no_o peer_n among_o those_o many_o thousand_o of_o israel_n there_o be_v none_o to_o be_v so_o much_o praise_v for_o beauty_n as_o absalon_n for_o from_o the_o sole_n of_o his_o foot_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o his_o head_n there_o be_v no_o blemish_n in_o he_o 2_o sam._n 14.25_o but_o the_o most_o exquisite_a earthly_a beauty_n be_v but_o skin-deep_a and_o but_o like_o the_o paint_n of_o a_o rot_a post_n it_o be_v but_o a_o fresh_a colour_n lay_v on_o mortality_n the_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v weak_a and_o crazy_a and_o therefore_o it_o soon_o fade_v but_o he_o that_o be_v like_a to_o christ_n in_o holiness_n shall_v be_v like_a to_o he_o in_o heavenly_a beauty_n and_o glory_n the_o beauty_n of_o glorify_a body_n shall_v be_v a_o shine_a beauty_n the_o expression_n of_o divine_n be_v thus_o as_o iron_n when_o it_o be_v heat_v in_o the_o fire_n we_o can_v see_v the_o iron_n for_o the_o fire_n it_o appear_v nothing_o else_o but_o fiery_a so_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o see_v the_o body_n for_o the_o glory_n thereof_o and_o as_o the_o air_n be_v now_o full_o possess_v with_o the_o light_n so_o shall_v our_o body_n be_v full_o possess_v with_o glory_n and_o the_o soul_n full_a of_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n shall_v be_v diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a body_n 5._o lessius_fw-la de_fw-la summo_fw-la bono_fw-mi lib._n 3._o cap_n 5._o and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a therefore_o it_o behoove_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v resplendent_a according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o soul_n inhabit_v it_o yea_o it_o be_v conceive_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o soul_n
to_o they_o but_o as_o for_o subtlety_n which_o proper_o signify_v a_o property_n whereby_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v spiritual_a have_v a_o penetrative_a virtue_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o corpulent_a part_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o body_n have_v part_n and_o dimension_n i_o can_v see_v how_o it_o can_v be_v attribute_v to_o glorify_a body_n which_o after_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o extensive_a and_o bodily_a part_n for_o quantity_n and_o material_a substance_n as_o they_o have_v before_o and_o can_v no_o more_o pierce_v through_o any_o true_a bodily_a substance_n which_o have_v the_o dimension_n of_o quantity_n as_o length_n breadth_n thickness_n than_o they_o can_v before_o their_o resurrection_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o mortality_n and_o corruption_n although_o divers_a of_o the_o ancient_n affirm_v that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n enter_v into_o the_o room_n where_o his_o disciple_n be_v the_o door_n be_v shut_v john_n 20.26_o by_o pass_v through_o the_o door_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v so_o we_o may_v not_o attribute_v the_o same_o as_o a_o thing_n natural_a to_o his_o glorify_a body_n it_o have_v the_o same_o dimension_n of_o quantity_n for_o fullness_n of_o matter_n it_o have_v before_o but_o must_v rather_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n to_o who_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a but_o i_o suppose_v though_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v present_o before_o and_o after_o his_o passage_n yet_o they_o open_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n or_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n at_o the_o instant_n of_o his_o passage_n as_o act_n 12.10_o the_o creature_n give_v place_n to_o the_o creator_n otherwise_o we_o must_v hold_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n make_v a_o penetration_n through_o the_o door_n and_o then_o there_o must_v be_v two_o solid_a body_n in_o one_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n which_o be_v impossible_a and_o st._n augustine_n say_v even_o of_o glorify_a body_n tolle_o spatia_fw-la corporibus_fw-la &_o corpora_fw-la non_fw-la erunt_fw-la take_v away_o space_n from_o the_o body_n and_o they_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v body_n sect_n iv_o of_o the_o impassibility_n of_o glorify_a body_n moreover_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n shall_v be_v make_v impassable_a in_o this_o life_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o infirmity_n to_o thousand_o of_o misery_n our_o body_n be_v butt_n against_o which_o misery_n and_o affliction_n which_o be_v the_o arrow_n of_o the_o almighty_a be_v shoot_v but_o glorify_v body_n be_v subject_a to_o none_o of_o these_o they_o suffer_v no_o pain_n christ_n will_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n sorrow_n and_o mourning_n shall_v flee_v away_o and_o be_v send_v pack_v to_o hell_n among_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a wretch_n their_o affliction_n be_v their_o portion_n heaven_n and_o the_o bless_a state_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v as_o free_v from_o misery_n as_o from_o sin_n this_o world_n to_o the_o godly_a be_v as_o the_o prison_n to_o joseph_n as_o nebuchadnezzar_n furnace_n to_o the_o three_o child_n as_o the_o lion_n den_n to_o daniel_n this_o world_n to_o the_o godly_a be_v like_o a_o house_n of_o correction_n wherein_o be_v much_o toil_n and_o labour_n and_o very_o much_o scourge_v beside_o we_o be_v bear_v to_o be_v miserable_a we_o shall_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o suffer_v but_o we_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o prison_n our_o body_n shall_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o furnace_n free_v from_o the_o house_n of_o correction_n and_o no_o grief_n nor_o misery_n shall_v evermore_o touch_v our_o glorify_a body_n their_o impassibility_n will_v then_o free_v they_o from_o all_o the_o injury_n of_o the_o element_n the_o natural_a heat_n which_o now_o waste_v they_o shall_v no_o more_o consume_v the_o natural_a moisture_n the_o contrary_n that_o compose_v man_n will_v then_o agree_v and_o the_o body_n be_v no_o long_o torment_v with_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n will_v stand_v in_o need_n neither_o of_o meat_n nor_o drink_n he_o will_v be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o consistency_n wherein_o he_o will_v have_v his_o just_a proportion_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o what_o be_v sow_o in_o weakness_n shall_v be_v raise_v in_o power_n and_o virtue_n so_o that_o the_o body_n shall_v not_o need_v that_o prop_v up_o as_o the_o weak_a pillar_n thereof_o do_v now_o need_v support_n in_o this_o state_n of_o mortality_n but_o this_o power_n be_v no_o supernatural_a virtue_n make_v the_o elementary_a part_n and_o quality_n to_o be_v of_o another_o nature_n then_o now_o they_o be_v for_o there_o must_v be_v no_o change_n nor_o destruction_n but_o only_o a_o perfection_n of_o nature_n neither_o shall_v these_o elementary_a quality_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v limit_v or_o obstruct_v in_o their_o operation_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o fight_v against_o each_o other_o to_o their_o mutual_a destruction_n for_o then_o the_o impassibility_n of_o glorify_a body_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o internal_a virtue_n as_o abide_v in_o the_o body_n which_o be_v against_o the_o apostle_n intent_n but_o only_o a_o external_a assistance_n of_o god_n aquinas_n say_v 1._o aquin._n supplem_fw-la qu._n 82._o art_n 1._o that_o this_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o impassibility_n flow_v immediate_o from_o the_o soul_n herself_o which_o inform_v the_o body_n do_v so_o full_o and_o perfect_o subdue_v all_o the_o power_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o same_o unto_o herself_o that_o no_o contrary_a agent_n can_v be_v able_a to_o make_v any_o violent_a impression_n upon_o or_o act_v violent_o against_o the_o body_n either_o to_o corrupt_v or_o destroy_v it_o or_o in_o the_o least_o to_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v it_o from_o that_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a state_n wherein_o it_o rest_v sect_n v._o of_o the_o incorruptibility_n and_o immortality_n of_o glorify_a body_n final_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v so_o firm_a and_o stable_a that_o it_o can_v never_o wither_v or_o decay_v it_o shall_v be_v incorruptible_a the_o body_n be_v sow_o in_o corruption_n it_o be_v raise_v in_o incorruption_n 1_o cor._n 15.42_o this_o corruptible_a must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n verse_n 53._o the_o body_n of_o the_o beatify_v shall_v then_o be_v embalm_v with_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v cause_v they_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v incorruptible_a their_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v incorruptible_a and_o immortal_a like_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n these_o earthly_a tabernacle_n or_o demicilia_fw-la animae_fw-la must_v be_v take_v down_o and_o then_o these_o body_n of_o dust_n must_v return_v to_o dust_n we_o must_v say_v to_o corruption_n thou_o be_v our_o mother_n and_o to_o the_o worm_n thou_o be_v our_o sister_n and_o the_o soul_n must_v suffer_v a_o divorce_n from_o the_o body_n but_o when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v our_o mortality_n shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n than_o our_o corruption_n shall_v put_v on_o incorruption_n these_o vile_a dusty_a body_n of_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v glorious_a mansion_n for_o our_o soul_n and_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v for_o ever_o unite_v to_o our_o body_n again_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o suffer_v a_o divorce_n from_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n shall_v never_o see_v corruption_n any_o more_o we_o shall_v then_o enjoy_v a_o eternal_a spring_n of_o year_n which_o shall_v never_o wither_v our_o day_n will_v pass_v on_o yet_o shall_v we_o never_o feel_v any_o decay_n or_o declension_n in_o ourselves_o our_o bud_a verdure_n will_v fear_v no_o winter_n the_o lily_n and_o rose_n of_o our_o countenance_n will_v keep_v their_o freshness_n and_o as_o original_a righteousness_n serve_v to_o man_n as_o a_o garment_n in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n so_o glory_n will_v be_v instead_o of_o a_o robe_n to_o the_o bless_a god_n have_v make_v the_o soul_n of_o so_o powerful_a a_o nature_n dioscor_fw-la august_n epist_n 66._o ad_fw-la dioscor_fw-la say_v one_o of_o the_o ancient_n that_o from_o her_o glorious_a happiness_n there_o redound_v to_o the_o body_n the_o vigour_n of_o incorruption_n and_o so_o long_o as_o the_o glorify_a soul_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o god_n and_o the_o glorify_a body_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o soul_n so_o long_o it_o shall_v be_v impossible_a for_o any_o bodily_a agent_n whatsoever_o to_o have_v any_o transient_a action_n or_o impression_n which_o may_v any_o way_n change_n or_o hurt_v the_o same_o but_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 6.10_o in_o that_o christ_n die_v he_o die_v unto_o sin_n once_o but_o in_o that_o he_o live_v he_o live_v unto_o god_n so_o we_o shall_v then_o live_v with_o god_n and_o unto_o god_n as_o christ_n for_o ever_o sect_n vi_o albeit_o glorify_a body_n shall_v be_v impassable_a and_o incorruptible_a so_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o contrary_a or_o
the_o gentile_n and_o the_o rest_n what_o a_o ravish_a sight_n will_v it_o be_v to_o see_v the_o glorious_a company_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o behold_v the_o goodly_a fellowship_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o set_v your_o eye_n on_o that_o noble_a army_n of_o martyr_n and_o confessor_n that_o have_v shed_v their_o blood_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n what_o a_o joyful_a sight_n will_v it_o be_v to_o see_v those_o holy_a prophet_n isaiah_n jeremiah_n ezekiel_n daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n above_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o cruel_a persecutor_n clothe_v with_o long_a white_a garment_n with_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o with_o the_o glorious_a ensign_n of_o their_o victorious_a triumph_n will_v it_o not_o be_v a_o goodly_a sight_n to_o behold_v that_o glorious_a forerunner_n of_o christ_n who_o choose_v rather_o to_o lose_v his_o head_n then_o to_o dissemble_v the_o filthiness_n of_o a_o incestuous_a king_n and_o no_o less_o delightful_a will_v it_o be_v to_o see_v st._n stephen_n who_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n for_o christ_n and_o that_o holy_a apostle_n st._n james_n who_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o herod_n that_o cruel_a tyrant_n now_o reign_v with_o christ_n in_o glory_n what_o a_o excellent_a sight_n shall_v it_o be_v to_o see_v those_o famous_a light_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n peter_n and_o paul_n shine_v there_o very_o glorious_o with_o the_o trophy_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n wherewith_o they_o be_v crown_v and_o this_o shall_v add_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o this_o sight_n that_o the_o saint_n shall_v all_o enjoy_v the_o glory_n of_o each_o other_o as_o if_o they_o be_v proper_o their_o own_o if_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o communion_n here_o be_v so_o sweet_a even_o a_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n what_o will_v it_o be_v when_o all_o the_o bless_a soul_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n shall_v meet_v all_o together_o and_o they_o whole_o free_v from_o all_o corruption_n and_o imperfection_n what_o a_o bless_a sight_n will_v that_o be_v if_o there_o be_v such_o great_a pleasure_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o flower_n and_o jewel_n what_o great_a delight_n will_v there_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o innumerable_a company_n of_o the_o bless_a who_o shall_v all_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n especial_o when_o all_o shall_v be_v dear_a to_o their_o parent_n child_n relation_n than_o now_o they_o be_v to_o behold_v multitude_n the_o beauty_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o heaven_n and_o their_o sweet_a familiarity_n with_o one_o another_o will_v be_v a_o most_o pleasant_a spectacle_n their_o multitude_n will_v be_v innumerable_a god_n have_v many_o son_n and_o daughter_n that_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o glory_n heb._n 2.10_o there_o be_v a_o numberless_a number_n that_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o lamb_n wheresoever_o he_o go_v rev._n 14.1_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o empty_a place_n in_o heaven_n nor_o any_o void_a of_o inhabitant_n likewise_o the_o beauty_n of_o all_o shall_v be_v admirable_a they_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n and_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a image_n of_o their_o heavenly_a father_n and_o how_o pleasant_a a_o thing_n will_v this_o be_v to_o behold_v in_o dignity_n all_o shall_v be_v the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o child_n of_o god_n all_o shall_v be_v triumphant_a king_n have_v have_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n we_o count_v it_o a_o admirable_a sight_n if_o we_o can_v see_v one_o king_n among_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n in_o his_o glory_n oh_o than_o what_o a_o sight_n shall_v this_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v see_v million_o of_o glorious_a king_n and_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o infinite_a glory_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v priest_n unto_o god_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n perpetual_o to_o he_o in_o brief_a the_o least_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v great_a in_o dignity_n and_o glory_n than_o all_o the_o king_n of_o this_o world_n moreover_o they_o shall_v be_v most_o delight_v to_o behold_v that_o sweet_a converse_n they_o shall_v have_v together_o if_o it_o be_v a_o delightful_a thing_n in_o the_o court_n of_o some_o great_a prince_n to_o obtain_v the_o favour_n and_o good_a will_n of_o all_o what_o pleasure_n will_v it_o be_v to_o enjoy_v the_o friendship_n and_o familiarity_n of_o such_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o noble_a person_n oh_o what_o a_o royal_a feast_n and_o most_o magnificent_a banquet_n will_v the_o lord_n make_v for_o his_o child_n when_o they_o shall_v all_o meet_v together_o in_o his_o holy_a mountain_n let_v worldling_n get_v they_o to_o their_o gluttonous_a and_o carnal_a feast_n let_v they_o even_o burst_v themselves_o with_o their_o superfluous_a excess_n such_o a_o feast_n as_o this_o where_o the_o choice_a dainty_n be_v serve_v in_o by_o the_o holy_a angel_n where_o even_o christ_n himself_o the_o master_n and_o maker_n of_o the_o feast_n will_v as_o it_o be_v g●rd_v himself_o and_o serve_v be_v convenient_a only_a for_o god_n and_o his_o choose_a people_n sect_n ix_o and_o as_o the_o eye_n shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o dimness_n so_o the_o ear_n shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o defect_n of_o deafness_n the_o ear_n shall_v always_o hear_v that_o ravish_a music_n sound_v forth_o from_o the_o heavenly_a choir_n where_o a_o consort_n of_o innumerable_a angel_n and_o glorify_a saint_n be_v sing_v hallelujah_n to_o their_o god_n and_o magnify_v their_o glorious_a redeemer_n for_o ever_o for_o the_o high_a praise_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o his_o saint_n psal_n 149.6_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o ardent_a love_n to_o god_n who_o have_v heap_v so_o many_o good_a thing_n upon_o they_o they_o shall_v break_v forth_o into_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n they_o shall_v praise_v he_o out_o of_o all_o his_o work_n and_o benefit_n from_o his_o work_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n from_o his_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o justification_n adoption_n and_o sanctification_n from_o his_o work_n of_o mercy_n and_o justice_n from_o the_o reward_n he_o bestow_v on_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o punishment_n he_o inflict_v on_o the_o wicked_a and_o from_o all_o his_o secret_a and_o reveal_v judgement_n they_o shall_v have_v all_o these_o thing_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o shall_v clear_o understand_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n in_o they_o all_o and_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o incredible_a consolation_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o joy_n shall_v praise_v he_o for_o all_o peculiarly_a blessing_n he_o and_o give_v he_o immortal_a thanks_o they_o shall_v not_o want_v matter_n for_o everlasting_a praise_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o only_o praise_v he_o with_o their_o heart_n but_o also_o in_o their_o body_n with_o their_o tongue_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o most_o excellent_a harmony_n of_o voice_n incomparable_o surpass_v the_o music_n in_o the_o world_n this_o will_v be_v exceed_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a that_o one_o only_a sound_n of_o it_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v the_o whole_a world_n asleep_o now_o as_o the_o saint_n shall_v incessant_o with_o vocal_a praise_n magnify_v the_o lord_n so_o without_o doubt_n their_o vocal_a hallelujah_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o understand_v of_o one_o another_o what_o ravish_v expression_n of_o love_n shall_v they_o then_o hear_v from_o christ_n and_o from_o each_o other_o what_o song_n of_o joy_n and_o triumph_v upon_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o devout_a st._n augustine_n break_v forth_o into_o this_o meditation_n 25._o omne_fw-la opus_fw-la sanct●rum_fw-la leus_fw-la dei_fw-la sine_fw-la fi●e_fw-la sine_fw-la defectione_n sine_fw-la labour_v faelix_fw-la ergo_fw-la &_o vero_fw-la in_fw-la perpe_fw-mi tuum_fw-la faelix_fw-la si_fw-la post_fw-la resolutionem_fw-la huius_fw-la corpusculi_fw-la audivero_fw-la iila_fw-la cantica_fw-la caelestis_fw-la enelodiae_fw-la quae_fw-la cantantur_fw-la ad_fw-la laudem_fw-la regis_fw-la aeterni_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la super●ae_fw-la petriae_fw-la civibus_fw-la beatorumque_fw-la spirituum_fw-la agminibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n august_n med●t_fw-la cap._n 25._o the_o whole_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v to_o praise_n god_n without_o end_n without_o fail_v without_o labour_n happy_a therefore_o and_o true_o happy_a be_o i_o for_o ever_o if_o after_o the_o resolution_n of_o my_o body_n i_o shall_v be_v count_v worthy_a to_o hear_v those_o song_n of_o heavenly_a melody_n which_o be_v sing_v in_o praise_v the_o everlasting_a king_n by_o those_o citizen_n of_o the_o country_n that_o be_v above_o and_o by_o the_o troop_n of_o those_o bless_a spirit_n which_o be_v there_o oh_o how_o happy_a shall_v i_o account_v myself_o to_o be_v if_o i_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o sing_v those_o song_n and_o stand_v by_o my_o king_n my_o god_n the_o captain_n of_o my_o salvation_n and_o behold_v
excellency_n of_o the_o godhead_n this_o can_v be_v comprehend_v by_o any_o of_o the_o creature_n yet_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o the_o understanding_n shall_v then_o be_v more_o perfect_a in_o its_o apprehension_n in_o its_o judgement_n i._o in_o its_o apprehension_n that_o shall_v be_v most_o quick_a and_o acute_a the_o soul_n shall_v have_v a_o most_o sharp_a and_o pierce_a eyesight_n ready_o apprehend_v and_o conceive_v it_o shall_v not_o see_v through_o a_o glass_n it_o shall_v not_o have_v its_o knowledge_n at_o second_o hand_n 1._o it_o shall_v not_o apprehend_v god_n by_o the_o creature_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o creature_n be_v the_o dark_a representation_n of_o god_n there_o be_v but_o some_o of_o his_o foot-print_n in_o the_o creature_n they_o be_v no_o glass_n wherein_o we_o shall_v behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n at_o the_o best_a the_o creature_n be_v but_o jacob_n ladder_n to_o we_o by_o which_o we_o may_v ascend_v from_o earth_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n the_o creature_n can_v but_o take_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o lead_v we_o to_o god_n and_o lift_v up_o our_o mind_n to_o heaven_n the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o creature_n can_v afford_v because_o god_n face_n can_v be_v see_v in_o the_o creature_n and_o yet_o this_o we_o may_v grant_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v see_v god_n in_o the_o creature_n then_o but_o with_o this_o difference_n as_o dionysius_n well_o observe_v ercop_n diony_n ercop_n the_o creature_n will_v be_v specula_fw-la clara_fw-la in_o statu_fw-la integro_fw-la clear_a glass_n in_o a_o perfect_a state_n but_o now_o in_o statu_fw-la corrupto_fw-la in_o a_o corrupt_a state_n they_o be_v specula_fw-la aenigmatica_fw-la obscure_a glass_n 2._o the_o glorify_a soul_n shall_v apprehend_v god_n after_o another_o manner_n then_o now_o it_o can_v know_v he_o from_o his_o word_n or_o understand_v he_o in_o his_o word_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n be_v by_o the_o school_n call_v cognitio_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v a_o far_o great_a knowledge_n than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n from_o the_o creature_n faith_n be_v of_o a_o high_a reach_n than_o reason_n or_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o word_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o god_n more_o than_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n ever_o can_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o nature_n ken_n thing_n which_o reason_n can_v almost_o deny_v at_o least_o dispute_n against_o the_o word_n reveal_v of_o god_n the_o creature_n show_v but_o the_o footstep_n of_o god_n the_o word_n show_v his_o backpart_n his_o glorious_a attribute_n his_o gracious_a goodness_n but_o yet_o the_o word_n can_v show_v we_o the_o face_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o beatific_a vision_n be_v more_o than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n we_o have_v from_o the_o word_n 3._o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n be_v more_o than_o that_o which_o the_o saint_n have_v of_o he_o by_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n the_o saint_n do_v behold_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n in_o this_o life_n david_n often_o pray_v lord_n lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o but_o yet_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n can_v show_v the_o very_a countenance_n of_o god_n himself_o it_o must_v be_v the_o light_n of_o glory_n that_o must_v discover_v that_o to_o we_o indeed_o to_o know_v god_n by_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n which_o more_o proper_o be_v term_v the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n be_v call_v life_n eternal_a john_n 17.3_o it_o be_v call_v eternal_a life_n because_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o in_o christ_n be_v the_o medium_n a_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o life_n eternal_a and_o then_o again_o it_o be_v vita_fw-la eterna_fw-la inchoata_fw-la save_v faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o look_v god_n in_o the_o face_n yet_o this_o we_o may_v grant_v that_o what_o the_o creature_n what_o the_o word_n reveal_v of_o god_n what_o we_o know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o more_o clear_a more_o full_a and_o more_o manifest_a sight_n of_o it_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v then_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v i_o know_v himself_o by_o himself_o we_o shall_v know_v he_o by_o himself_o without_o the_o creature_n know_v he_o by_o himself_o without_o the_o external_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n know_v he_o without_o the_o sacrament_n the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v glass_n wherein_o we_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o in_o heaven_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n of_o these_o glass_n we_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n without_o these_o glass_n by_o himself_o look_v as_o god_n do_v manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o angel_n so_o he_o will_v manifest_v himself_o to_o we_o they_o see_v god_n in_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o therefore_o they_o be_v say_v always_o to_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n and_o so_o shall_v glorify_v saint_n do_v here_o the_o bodily_a eye_n may_v be_v dim_a either_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o eye_n a_o defect_n of_o strength_n in_o the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n of_o sight_n or_o because_o of_o scale_n or_o film_n grow_v over_o it_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o understanding_n or_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n its_o sight_n may_v be_v dim_a and_o imperfect_a either_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o natural_a weakness_n or_o by_o the_o scale_n of_o lust_n or_o sinful_a corruption_n overgrow_a it_o these_o do_v exceed_o blind_v the_o understanding_n and_o dull_a the_o apprehension_n while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o state_n of_o mortality_n now_o both_o these_o shall_v be_v do_v away_o in_o that_o state_n of_o glory_n the_o organ_n or_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n shall_v then_o be_v strengthen_v with_o perfection_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o weakness_n remain_v in_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v most_o strong_a and_o vigorous_a the_o soul_n shall_v then_o be_v elevate_v and_o raise_v to_o that_o strength_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o gaze_v upon_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o so_o see_v he_o as_o never_o to_o lose_v the_o sight_n of_o he_o then_o likewise_o all_o the_o scale_n shall_v be_v remove_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o least_o mote_n of_o lust_n to_o dim_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n it_o shall_v see_v clear_o and_o perfect_o and_o ignorance_n which_o be_v here_o a_o brand_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v quite_o deface_v by_o the_o brightness_n that_o shall_v enlighten_v the_o soul_n tunc_fw-la nec_fw-la falli_fw-la nec_fw-la peccare_fw-la possunt_fw-la homines_fw-la veritate_fw-la illuminati_fw-la &_o in_o bono_fw-mi confirmati_fw-la then_o man_n enlighten_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o confirm_v in_o good_a can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v nor_o sin_n say_v st._n augustine_n how_o quick_a be_v adam_n apprehension_n in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n how_o do_v the_o acuteness_n of_o his_o understanding_n penetrate_v into_o the_o inside_n of_o the_o creature_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o give_v they_o name_n suitable_a to_o their_o nature_n now_o as_o christ_n the_o second_o adam_n be_v incomparable_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o believer_n be_v the_o spiritual_a seed_n of_o christ_n as_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v the_o natural_a seed_n of_o adam_n so_o far_o more_o transcendent_a shall_v that_o perfection_n of_o apprehension_n and_o understanding_n be_v which_o christ_n shall_v illighten_v the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n withal_o as_o his_o seed_n in_o that_o state_n of_o blessedness_n even_o far_o surpass_v that_o which_o adam_n have_v and_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v propagate_v from_o he_o to_o his_o natural_a issue_n have_v he_o persevere_v in_o the_o integrity_n of_o his_o nature_n wherein_o he_o be_v create_v sect_n ii_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n ii_o as_o the_o apprehension_n so_o likewise_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v perfect_v in_o heaven_n here_o sometime_o quick_a apprehension_n be_v accompany_v with_o shallow_a judgement_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n solid_a judgement_n be_v join_v with_o slow_a apprehension_n but_o in_o glory_n the_o soundness_n of_o the_o judgement_n shall_v be_v correspondent_a with_o the_o clearness_n and_o quickness_n of_o the_o apprehension_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o least_o mistake_n nor_o obnoxious_a to_o any_o error_n here_o we_o be_v full_a of_o levity_n and_o waver_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n take_v up_o opinion_n light_o without_o due_a examination_n and_o for_o want_v of_o strength_n of_o judgement_n we_o be_v ready_a upon_o every_o sleight_n occasion_n to_o receive_v another_o doctrine_n and_o likewise_o presume_v upon_o the_o strength_n of_o and_o subtlety_n of_o our_o own_o wit_n not_o limit_v by_o
love_v every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o himself_o chap._n xxv_o sect_n i._o of_o the_o joy_n of_o glorify_a saint_n what_o it_o be_v and_o to_o what_o it_o extend_v itself_o out_o of_o love_n flow_v joy_n which_o open_v and_o enlarge_v the_o heart_n upon_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n and_o glory_n the_o beatific_a joy_n be_v as_o sublime_a supernatural_a and_o wonderful_a as_o the_o beatisick_n vision_n of_o god_n and_o love_n itself_o be_v for_o these_o be_v altogether_o equal_a and_o commensurate_a among_o themselves_o as_o well_o by_o intensive_a perfection_n as_o by_o eminency_n of_o nature_n or_o specifical_a perfection_n so_o much_o do_v the_o saint_n love_v as_o they_o see_v and_o so_o much_o do_v they_o rejoice_v as_o they_o love_v the_o chief_a object_n which_o delight_v the_o saint_n be_v of_o infinite_a goodness_n beauty_n and_o sweetness_n comprehend_v in_o itself_o the_o goodness_n beauty_n and_o sweetness_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o this_o joy_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v so_o far_o surpass_v all_o worldly_a joy_n which_o be_v take_v in_o either_o by_o the_o sense_n or_o understanding_n as_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n do_v excel_v all_o the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o as_o much_o as_o a_o infinite_a good_a do_v exceed_v a_o finite_a good_a for_o that_o joy_n be_v infinite_o great_a and_o sweet_a than_o all_o the_o joy_n of_o this_o life_n i_o say_v infinite_o so_o that_o although_o all_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o sense_n which_o may_v be_v have_v in_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o one_o and_o shall_v be_v augment_v never_o so_o much_o yet_o can_v they_o never_o be_v equal_v with_o the_o joy_n of_o glorify_a saint_n because_o this_o joy_n be_v of_o a_o high_a kind_n viz._n divine_a and_o the_o sweetness_n of_o it_o be_v of_o a_o far_a other_o nature_n than_o the_o sweetness_n of_o earthly_a joy_n this_o will_v the_o more_o evident_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o eminency_n variety_n and_o stability_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n in_o which_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n do_v rejoice_v 1._o first_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n they_o do_v rejoice_v in_o the_o intrinsical_a good_a thing_n of_o god_n which_o be_v infinite_o abundant_a in_o he_o viz._n because_o they_o see_v he_o to_o be_v of_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n they_o see_v he_o to_o be_v eternal_a and_o incomprehensible_a they_o see_v he_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n they_o see_v all_o good_a sweetness_n and_o blessedness_n most_o abundant_o contain_v in_o he_o and_o their_o joy_n be_v the_o great_a because_o they_o see_v he_o possess_v all_o these_o thing_n after_o a_o most_o eminent_a manner_n for_o as_o they_o love_v god_n incomparable_o more_o than_o themselves_o so_o do_v they_o rejoice_v more_o in_o those_o eminency_n that_o be_v in_o he_o than_o in_o all_o their_o own_o blessedness_n if_o the_o joy_n that_o the_o saint_n have_v here_o in_o this_o vale_n of_o tear_n be_v many_o time_n unspeakable_a and_o far_o great_a than_o all_o worldly_a joy_n how_o incomparable_o great_a than_o shall_v their_o joy_n be_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o every_o faithful_a soul_n enter_v thou_o into_o thy_o master_n joy_n math._n 25._o then_o they_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v enter_v into_o a_o ocean_n and_o abyss_n of_o joy_n and_o therewith_o shall_v be_v compass_v about_o on_o every_o side_n and_o dwell_v eternal_o in_o it_o 2._o they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o all_o the_o extrinsical_a good_a thing_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o that_o glory_n which_o god_n have_v from_o the_o perpetual_a praise_n benediction_n and_o thanksgiving_n of_o all_o his_o saint_n they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o that_o glory_n which_o accru_v to_o he_o from_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect_a child_n and_o from_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o they_o do_v and_o shall_v suffer_v in_o the_o prison_n of_o divine_a justice_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o all_o this_o joy_n of_o they_o arise_v from_o their_o love_n to_o god_n as_o when_o a_o king_n son_n rejoice_v in_o the_o wisdom_n power_n riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n without_o have_v any_o respect_n at_o all_o to_o his_o own_o profit_n or_o honour_n but_o mere_o out_o of_o love_n to_o his_o father_n and_o for_o his_o father_n sake_n of_o this_o joy_n anselm_n thus_o speak_v so_o much_o as_o any_o one_o love_v another_o 25._o quoniam_fw-la quantum_fw-la cuique_fw-la diligit_fw-la alterum_fw-la tantum_fw-la de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi ejus_fw-la gaudet_fw-la anselm_n proso_n log_n ca._n 25._o so_o much_o he_o rejoice_v in_o his_o good_a and_o as_o in_o heaven_n every_o one_o will_v incomparable_o love_v god_n more_o than_o himself_o and_o all_o other_o with_o himself_o so_o he_o will_v rejoice_v more_o in_o the_o blessedness_n of_o god_n than_o in_o his_o own_o happiness_n and_o of_o all_o other_o with_o he_o as_o for_o their_o joy_n it_o shall_v be_v most_o full_a and_o abound_v a_o perpetual_a feast_n of_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n in_o god_n presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n pleasure_n for_o evermore_o psal_n 16.11_o s._n john_n say_v that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v that_o we_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o also_o may_v have_v fellowship_n with_o we_o and_o true_o our_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o these_o thing_n write_v we_o unto_o you_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a 1_o joh._n 1.3_o 4._o this_o seem_v to_o assure_v we_o that_o christian_n in_o this_o life_n may_v have_v a_o fullness_n of_o joy_n through_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n viz._n a_o fullness_n of_o eminency_n not_o of_o perfection_n such_o a_o fullness_n of_o joy_n as_o surpass_v all_o sinful_a and_o worldly_a joy_n such_o as_o overcome_v all_o worldly_a loss_n and_o sorrow_n how_o much_o more_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v their_o full_a enjoyment_n of_o god_n cause_n in_o they_o a_o absolute_a and_o most_o perfect_a fullness_n of_o joy_n as_o much_o joy_n as_o their_o heart_n can_v hold_v their_o heart_n also_o be_v enlarge_v and_o make_v capable_a of_o abundance_n of_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n they_o shall_v have_v joy_n then_o not_o that_o shall_v overcome_v all_o sorrow_n only_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v altogether_o free_a from_o all_o mixture_n of_o sorrow_n never_o a_o cloud_n of_o sadness_n or_o discontent_n shall_v ever_o in_o the_o least_o measure_n eclipse_n or_o darken_v their_o joy_n what_o be_v all_o our_o terrene_a joy_n they_o be_v but_o as_o a_o dream_n to_o this_o fullness_n of_o joy_n that_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n sect_n ii_o moreover_o beside_o this_o which_o be_v also_o unspeakable_a although_o inferior_a to_o those_o beforementioned_a 1._o they_o do_v rejoice_v in_o their_o own_o happiness_n which_o as_o it_o be_v very_o great_a so_o shall_v their_o joy_n be_v multiply_v according_o and_o first_o of_o all_o and_o above_o all_o they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o sight_n and_o possession_n of_o god_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n for_o if_o mortal_a man_n in_o this_o life_n have_v find_v a_o great_a treasure_n or_o come_v to_o possess_v a_o rich_a inheritance_n or_o have_v obtain_v a_o kingdom_n they_o look_v not_o for_o or_o some_o earthly_a and_o frail_a good_a which_o yet_o draw_v a_o thousand_o care_n with_o it_o and_o last_v but_o a_o short_a time_n be_v so_o exceed_o affect_v with_o joy_n that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v themselves_o and_o be_v even_o transport_v beyond_o themselves_o with_o a_o ecstasy_n of_o joy_n with_o what_o joy_n then_o think_v you_o shall_v the_o saint_n be_v affect_v when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o possession_n of_o a_o infinite_a good_a which_o exclude_v all_o solicitude_n and_o wherein_o all_o riches_n all_o honour_n all_o dignity_n all_o beauty_n all_o sweetness_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n can_v desire_v be_v most_o abundant_o contain_v and_o that_o which_o add_v to_o this_o joy_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o possession_n of_o this_o good_a to_o be_v most_o firm_a and_o sure_a and_o to_o abide_v for_o ever_o without_o any_o change_n or_o alteration_n therefore_o upon_o a_o double_a account_n their_o joy_n shall_v be_v incomparable_o great_a than_o all_o the_o joy_n of_o this_o world_n viz._n because_o the_o good_a which_o they_o shall_v possess_v shall_v be_v infinite_o great_a and_o more_o sublime_a than_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o
this_o life_n and_o they_o shall_v also_o have_v a_o everlasting_a enjoyment_n thereof_o 2._o they_o shall_v likewise_o rejoice_v in_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o chief_o in_o the_o perfection_n of_o all_o their_o grace_n and_o that_o clear_a knowledge_n they_o shall_v have_v of_o all_o thing_n which_o shall_v wonderful_o delight_v they_o they_o shall_v also_o be_v much_o affect_v with_o joy_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o evil_n and_o danger_n as_o well_o temporal_a as_o eternal_a which_o they_o shall_v then_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o have_v escape_v from_o the_o danger_n whereof_o they_o shall_v see_v themselves_o to_o be_v secure_a for_o ever_o and_o behold_v the_o horrible_a fire_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o numberless_a multitude_n of_o those_o that_o be_v cast_v into_o everlasting_a burn_n and_o the_o danger_n to_o which_o themselves_o be_v expose_v how_o shall_v their_o heart_n be_v fill_v with_o joy_n upon_o the_o meditation_n of_o god_n infinite_a mercy_n by_o which_o they_o be_v save_v from_o everlasting_a destruction_n and_o carry_v in_o safety_n into_o the_o port_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n 3._o they_o shall_v likewise_o rejoice_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o body_n when_o they_o shall_v perceive_v their_o body_n to_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n to_o be_v swift_a as_o it_o be_v like_o lightning_n to_o be_v like_o a_o spirit_n immortal_a incorruptible_a impassable_a 4._o they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o the_o amiableness_n of_o their_o habitation_n see_v themselves_o now_o translate_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n into_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n into_o the_o paradise_n of_o all_o delight_n into_o the_o region_n of_o light_n into_o the_o vision_n of_o peace_n into_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n into_o the_o celestial_a jerusalem_n into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bless_a a_o place_n abound_v with_o all_o delight_n and_o with_o all_o good_a thing_n and_o void_a of_o all_o discommodity_n grief_n and_o sorrow_n out_o of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o good_a thing_n of_o their_o own_o arise_v to_o they_o unspeakable_a joy_n sect_n iii_o furthermore_o they_o shall_v rejoice_v every_o one_o in_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o each_o other_o and_o in_o the_o felicity_n of_o all_o their_o companion_n for_o they_o shall_v most_o ardent_o love_v all_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o brethren_n and_o sister_n and_o fellow_n heir_n and_o withal_o they_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o their_o splendour_n glory_n excellency_n wisdom_n virtue_n blessedness_n as_o in_o their_o own_o and_o that_o much_o more_o than_o any_o parent_n in_o this_o life_n can_v rejoice_v in_o the_o felicity_n of_o his_o child_n or_o one_o friend_n in_o the_o prosperity_n of_o another_o quest_n but_o with_o what_o affection_n shall_v the_o parent_n and_o the_o child_n the_o husband_n and_o wife_n and_o one_o friend_n greet_v another_o in_o heaven_n sol._n we_o must_v not_o sure_o imagine_v that_o any_o of_o these_o conjugal_a or_o paternal_a affection_n which_o have_v their_o consummation_n on_o earth_n can_v be_v of_o any_o use_n in_o heaven_n nor_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o return_n of_o bypass_a and_o mortal_a affection_n towards_o friend_n kindred_n and_o child_n but_o as_o the_o body_n must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o immortality_n ere_o it_o can_v be_v a_o fit_a companion_n for_o the_o soul_n so_o must_v the_o soul_n likewise_o be_v devest_v of_o all_o such_o desire_n as_o be_v apt_a again_o to_o wed_v it_o to_o earthly_a and_o transitory_a delight_n before_o it_o can_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o bless_a communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o the_o soul_n shall_v assume_v the_o hand_n the_o eye_n and_o every_o member_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o a_o participation_n of_o glory_n without_o solicit_v they_o again_o to_o undergo_v the_o forepast_a drudgery_n in_o the_o flesh_n so_o the_o father_n and_o the_o child_n and_o one_o friend_n may_v behold_v another_o without_o the_o intimation_n of_o such_o duty_n or_o any_o resultance_n of_o such_o mortal_a desire_n as_o be_v imply_v in_o those_o relation_n but_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v permit_v to_o resume_v its_o own_o body_n rather_o than_o another_o and_o reason_n exact_v it_o shall_v gratify_v that_o flesh_n who_o inmate_n it_o have_v be_v rather_o than_o another_o so_o likewise_o those_o person_n who_o some_o near_a relation_n have_v former_o unite_v may_v be_v conceive_v to_o retain_v so_o much_o partiality_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o their_o joy_n as_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o rejoice_v that_o they_o be_v again_o unite_v in_o the_o participation_n of_o glory_n exclude_v none_o from_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o their_o joy_n but_o prefer_v some_o in_o the_o order_n of_o their_o rejoice_v but_o it_o may_v be_v that_o this_o affection_n must_v comply_v with_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o divine_a bounty_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v there_o bestow_v a_o great_a measure_n of_o our_o joy_n where_o he_o have_v be_v please_v to_o confer_v a_o great_a portion_n of_o his_o glory_n it_o will_v seem_v unreasonable_a that_o the_o soul_n alone_o shall_v inherit_v that_o glory_n which_o be_v procure_v perhaps_o by_o the_o torment_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o body_n as_o in_o holy_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n and_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o make_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n sharer_n of_o the_o same_o happiness_n beget_v a_o mutual_a claim_n among_o the_o saint_n to_o each_o other_o joy_n for_o one_o man_n may_v be_v a_o powerful_a instrument_n of_o another_o blessedness_n the_o father_n care_n may_v preserve_v the_o child_n and_o the_o piety_n of_o the_o son_n may_v inflame_v the_o father_n the_o mother_n tear_n may_v reduce_v the_o pervert_v son_n the_o believe_a husband_n may_v save_v the_o unbelieving_a wife_n and_o one_o friend_n may_v with_o happy_a success_n instruct_v admonish_v rebuke_n and_o pray_v for_o another_o now_o be_v it_o more_o reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o these_o immortal_a benefit_n and_o obligation_n shall_v be_v promiscuous_o and_o undiscernable_o swallow_v up_o in_o the_o sea_n of_o glory_n or_o to_o say_v that_o these_o party_n who_o it_o may_v concern_v shall_v see_v each_o other_o face_n to_o face_n some_o grateful_o rejoice_v that_o the_o instrument_n of_o their_o salvation_n like_o star_n of_o a_o great_a magnitude_n be_v more_o eminent_o glorious_a other_o always_o rejoice_v in_o behold_v their_o labour_n so_o high_o bless_v as_o to_o have_v procure_v the_o endless_a bliss_n of_o their_o fellow-creature_n our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o what_o joy_n there_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o angel_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o nature_n be_v stranger_n to_o we_o if_o angel_n who_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o but_o of_o a_o remote_a alliance_n to_o we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v turn_v aside_o from_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o chief_a good_a to_o behold_v with_o joy_n a_o repent_a sinner_n shall_v not_o man_n who_o be_v of_o the_o same_o stock_n and_o lineage_n be_v much_o more_o allow_v some_o expression_n of_o joy_n suitable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o wonder_n when_o they_o behold_v one_o another_o no_o long_o repent_v sinner_n but_o glorious_a saint_n in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n near_o the_o line_n where_o the_o sun_n be_v near_o they_o all_o the_o year_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v no_o winter_n the_o earth_n and_o tree_n be_v always_o green_a as_o in_o a_o perpetual_a spring_n so_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n upon_o who_o the_o face_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n shall_v shine_v for_o ever_o shall_v never_o see_v one_o cloudy_a day_n one_o winter_n night_n nor_o feel_v any_o sorrow_n or_o discomfort_n but_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o constant_a plenitude_n or_o fullness_n of_o joy_n as_o a_o perpetual_a spring_n for_o ever_o to_o conclude_v the_o frame_v of_o their_o body_n and_o spirit_n the_o place_n of_o their_o abode_n their_o company_n the_o object_n which_o they_o shall_v see_v and_o hear_v all_o thing_n within_o they_o and_o without_o they_o shall_v concur_v to_o make_v their_o joy_n complete_a and_o to_o cause_v their_o heart_n to_o rest_v in_o everlasting_a peace_n chap._n xxvi_o sect_n i._o as_o for_o the_o affection_n of_o desire_n it_o shall_v have_v no_o place_n in_o heaven_n the_o infinite_a sweetness_n which_o the_o saint_n shall_v taste_v in_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n shall_v abundant_o satisfy_v they_o and_o leave_v no_o place_n for_o desire_n their_o perfect_a enjoyment_n of_o god_n shall_v admit_v no_o hunger_a or_o thirst_v after_o further_a delight_n they_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v enough_o they_o shall_v be_v full_o satisfy_v but_o never_o cloy_v nor_o satiate_v whence_o s._n august_n say_v jo●n_n august_n tract_n 3._o in_o jo●n_n such_o shall_v that_o delight_n of_o beauty_n in_o
utter_a darkness_n but_o through_o god_n permission_n satan_n chain_n be_v sometime_o lengthen_v but_o then_o no_o more_o lengthen_v now_o he_o walk_v up_o and_o down_o assay_v to_o devour_v and_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v but_o then_o he_o shall_v walk_v no_o long_o the_o saint_n shall_v follow_v the_o lamb_n wheresoever_o he_o go_v and_o shall_v not_o in_o all_o their_o walk_n meet_v with_o a_o devil_n to_o tempt_v they_o to_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o 5._o the_o state_n of_o glory_n be_v liberty_n from_o death_n from_o the_o fear_n of_o it_o and_o from_o all_o thing_n tend_v to_o mortality_n bondage_n to_o death_n will_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o this_o life_n of_o liberty_n glory_n be_v triumphant_a over_o death_n hell_n and_o the_o grave_a bid_v defiance_n to_o they_o o_o grave_n where_o be_v thou_o o_o hell_n where_o be_v thou_o o_o death_n where_o be_v thou_o 1_o cor._n 15.54_o 55._o death_n and_o hell_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n rev._n 20.14_o by_o hell_n there_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o grave_a death_n and_o the_o grave_n shall_v be_v damn_v as_o well_o as_o the_o wicked_a 6._o the_o state_n of_o glory_n be_v a_o liberty_n from_o the_o rage_n wrath_n and_o persecution_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n their_o rage_n and_o persecution_n be_v a_o bondage_n and_o captivity_n to_o the_o saint_n hinder_v they_o from_o serve_v god_n with_o desire_a freedom_n they_o can_v put_v forth_o their_o godliness_n but_o they_o expose_v themselves_o to_o the_o scoff_v hatred_n rage_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o world_n now_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n will_v put_v a_o great_a gulf_n between_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a which_o will_v hinder_v they_o from_o all_o intercourse_n for_o know_v that_o if_o the_o damn_a can_v again_o be_v in_o company_n or_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o godly_a be_v they_o will_v persecute_v they_o again_o to_o the_o uttermost_a though_o they_o know_v they_o must_v be_v damn_v and_o therefore_o the_o devil_n now_o hate_v and_o tempt_v they_o though_o they_o aggravate_v their_o own_o torment_n 7._o it_o be_v a_o liberty_n from_o all_o imperfection_n of_o grace_n and_o weakness_n in_o their_o serve_a god_n 1._o from_o all_o imperfection_n of_o their_o grace_n which_o in_o this_o present_a life_n be_v very_o imperfect_a we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n say_v the_o apostle_n so_o we_o believe_v but_o in_o part_n we_o love_v god_n but_o in_o part_n we_o be_v holy_a but_o in_o part_n we_o be_v zealous_a for_o god_n but_o in_o part_n there_o be_v more_o doubt_n and_o ignorance_n than_o knowledge_n more_o unbelief_n than_o faith_n more_o want_n of_o love_n than_o love_n there_o be_v more_o sin_n than_o grace_n and_o holiness_n now_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n we_o shall_v know_v as_o we_o be_v know_v our_o understanding_n will_v be_v enlarge_v that_o we_o shall_v know_v god_n full_o and_o perfect_o our_o faith_n will_v be_v turn_v into_o sight_n our_o hope_n into_o possession_n we_o shall_v then_o love_v god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n with_o all_o our_o soul_n etc._n etc._n the_o angel_n be_v call_v seraphim_n because_o as_o some_o say_v they_o burn_v in_o love_n and_o zeal_n towards_o god_n so_o shall_v all_o the_o saint_n be_v fill_v with_o this_o seraphical_a love_n we_o shall_v be_v as_o holy_a as_o our_o nature_n be_v capable_a the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o moon_n because_o of_o those_o spot_n in_o she_o which_o be_v imperfection_n but_o in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n they_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o sun_n which_o have_v no_o spot_n in_o it_o and_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v sevenfold_a more_o resplendent_a than_o now_o so_o the_o grace_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v sevenfold_a more_o holy_a than_o now_o they_o be_v 2._o it_o shall_v be_v a_o liberty_n from_o all_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n in_o serve_a god_n this_o be_v the_o necessary_a consequent_a of_o the_o former_a for_o the_o more_o glorious_a and_o holy_a a_o man_n be_v the_o more_o able_a he_o be_v to_o serve_v god_n if_o perfect_o sanctify_v then_o he_o serve_v god_n perfect_o the_o angel_n fulfil_v the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o grace_n they_o run_v yea_o they_o fly_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o commandment_n this_o liberty_n and_o enlargement_n shall_v all_o the_o saint_n have_v in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n while_o they_o be_v here_o they_o be_v in_o bondage_n to_o much_o spiritual_a deadness_n and_o slothfulness_n they_o pray_v they_o praise_v god_n acceptable_o though_o they_o can_v pray_v nor_o praise_v he_o perfect_o they_o may_v pray_v and_o purpose_n to_o run_v the_o way_n of_o god_n commandment_n but_o can_v because_o they_o be_v too_o weak_a and_o be_v fetter_v with_o spiritual_a slothfulness_n and_o deadness_n glory_n will_v do_v away_o all_o this_o and_o make_v we_o as_o ready_a and_o able_a to_o do_v the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n as_o angel_n do_v 8._o it_o be_v a_o liberty_n from_o all_o natural_a clog_n which_o the_o body_n in_o this_o state_n of_o union_n fasten_v upon_o the_o soul_n insomuch_o that_o the_o body_n be_v animae_fw-la ergastulum_fw-la the_o prison_n of_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v pondus_fw-la or_o onus_fw-la animae_fw-la the_o burden_n or_o weight_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o regenerate_a soul_n can_v act_v vigorous_o because_o the_o body_n be_v so_o unwieldy_a the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a but_o when_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n shall_v be_v reunite_v and_o meet_v in_o a_o state_n of_o glory_n the_o body_n will_v be_v a_o nimble_a handmaid_n and_o pliable_a to_o all_o the_o motion_n and_o command_v of_o the_o soul_n the_o body_n then_o which_o be_v now_o the_o soul_n prison_n will_v be_v the_o soul_n paradise_n and_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n will_v act_v most_o vigorous_o the_o soul_n will_v never_o tire_v out_o the_o body_n nor_o will_v the_o body_n clog_v the_o soul_n they_o will_v both_o be_v unwearied_a in_o their_o glorious_a service_n the_o body_n than_o will_v be_v spiritual_a though_o not_o a_o spirit_n and_o become_v immortal_a incorruptible_a as_o the_o soul_n be_v 9_o it_o be_v a_o liberty_n from_o many_o duty_n and_o service_n and_o spiritual_a exercise_n which_o be_v now_o require_v of_o we_o the_o saint_n work_n shall_v be_v lessen_v in_o heaven_n the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v much_o less_o than_o it_o be_v under_o the_o law_n hence_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o pedagogy_n of_o the_o law_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n call_v a_o state_n of_o bondage_n a_o state_n of_o subjection_n but_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o state_n of_o liberty_n but_o when_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v take_v up_o into_o glory_n than_o their_o service_n shall_v be_v far_o less_o than_o now_o they_o be_v many_o duty_n and_o grace_n shall_v be_v do_v away_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v pray_v no_o more_o for_o any_o mercy_n for_o ourselves_o all_o pray_v shall_v be_v turn_v into_o praise_v of_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o word_n nor_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n any_o more_o nor_o fast_o and_o afflict_v our_o soul_n any_o more_o we_o shall_v no_o long_o mourn_v for_o sin_n repentance_n will_v be_v do_v away_o yea_o faith_n itself_o as_o many_o divine_n conceive_v shall_v be_v do_v away_o pray_v we_o shall_v not_o because_o than_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v in_o want_n our_o soul_n shall_v be_v so_o abundant_o satisfy_v with_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n house_n we_o shall_v mourn_v and_o repent_v no_o more_o because_o we_o shall_v sin_v no_o more_o our_o service_n in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n will_v be_v take_v up_o in_o praise_v god_n in_o admire_a god_n in_o love_a god_n rejoice_v in_o god_n give_v he_o praise_n and_o glory_n for_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n towards_o we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n 10._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o liberty_n indeed_o the_o vast_a heaven_n of_o heaven_n o_o you_o saint_n shall_v be_v the_o place_n of_o your_o habitation_n and_o delight_n what_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n compare_v to_o it_o it_o be_v but_o a_o narrow_a prison_n a_o house_n of_o correction_n a_o house_n of_o bondage_n to_o a_o gracious_a spirit_n it_o be_v but_o as_o a_o cage_n to_o a_o bird_n so_o be_v the_o world_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n 11._o it_o be_v a_o liberty_n from_o all_o fear_n or_o danger_n of_o everlose_v their_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n
flow_v from_o himself_o for_o ever_o that_o we_o may_v see_v our_o debt_n of_o love_n to_o christ_n be_v eternal_a o_o how_o many_o thousand_o talent_n be_v we_o owe_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o long_o the_o saint_n enjoy_v the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n through_o million_o of_o age_n their_o debt_n to_o the_o lamb_n that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n will_v be_v the_o great_a eternal_a praise_n can_v take_v down_o nothing_o of_o it_o v._o god_n will_v have_v some_o everlasting_o to_o praise_n and_o glorify_v his_o name_n a_o consort_n of_o saint_n his_o redeem_a one_o to_o join_v with_o his_o elect_a angel_n in_o magnify_v his_o name_n exalt_v his_o praise_n and_o do_v he_o honour_n to_o all_o eternity_n ransom_v one_o shall_v sing_v the_o gospel-song_n worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n the_o gospel-tune_n of_o the_o song_n of_o free_a grace_n shall_v be_v for_o ever_o sing_v in_o that_o bless_a assembly_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v who_o name_n be_v now_o write_v in_o heaven_n vi_o he_o will_v make_v his_o saint_n everlasting_o bless_v even_o for_o the_o angel_n sake_n who_o persevere_v in_o their_o integrity_n and_o obedience_n from_o the_o first_o moment_n of_o their_o creation_n until_o now_o that_o their_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a this_o may_v be_v collect_v by_o way_n of_o analogy_n and_o proportion_n from_o that_o speech_n of_o christ_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o joy_n shall_v be_v in_o heaven_n over_o one_o sinner_n that_o repent_v luk._n 15.7_o 10._o and_o again_o there_o be_v joy_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o angel_n over_o one_o sinner_n that_o repent_v if_o the_o angel_n do_v now_o rejoice_v to_o see_v their_o loss_n in_o part_n repair_v and_o that_o instead_o of_o their_o fellow_n angel_n that_o fall_v revolt_a from_o god_n and_o forsake_v they_o and_o now_o fight_v against_o god_n and_o oppose_v they_o in_o that_o ministry_n wherein_o they_o serve_v he_o some_o of_o man_n kind_a be_v turn_v unto_o god_n by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o hebr._n 12.22_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o faithful_a you_o be_v come_v to_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n i_o say_v if_o the_o angel_n rejoice_v in_o this_o how_o shall_v their_o joy_n be_v fill_v up_o to_o see_v many_o thousand_o of_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n translate_v to_o heaven_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o happiness_n this_o be_v a_o principal_a adjunct_n and_o qualification_n of_o that_o blessedness_n and_o salvation_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o his_o people_n it_o may_v serve_v to_o rouse_v up_o those_o who_o heart_n and_o thought_n be_v chief_o take_v up_o with_o such_o temporal_a thing_n as_o be_v perish_v and_o of_o a_o very_a short_a continuance_n s._n paul_n practice_n be_v quite_o contrary_a 2_o cor._n 4.18_o we_o look_v not_o say_v he_o at_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v which_o be_v temporal_a but_o at_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v which_o be_v eternal_a oh_o that_o we_o can_v be_v sensible_a of_o this_o extreme_a folly_n and_o learn_v serious_o to_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v for_o a_o immortal_a soul_n that_o must_v have_v a_o everlasting_a be_v and_o subsistence_n chief_o to_o mind_n take_v care_n for_o and_o strive_v for_o thing_n that_o last_o but_o a_o short_a time_n when_o it_o have_v the_o offer_n of_o thing_n eternal_a to_o surfeit_v on_o momentany_a delight_n and_o neglect_v eternal_a fullness_n of_o joy_n to_o seek_v greedy_o after_o uncertain_a and_o perish_a riches_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o treasure_n of_o eternity_n to_o affect_v vain_a applause_n from_o the_o short_a breath_n of_o die_a man_n and_o never_o labour_v to_o make_v sure_a of_o everlasting_a glory_n to_o strive_v to_o get_v the_o friendship_n of_o great_a man_n carnal_a person_n and_o neglect_v to_o have_v the_o eternal_a love_n of_o god_n assure_v to_o they_o not_o labour_v to_o enjoy_v god_n for_o ever_o this_o may_v be_v much_o aggravate_v if_o we_o take_v in_o consideration_n viz._n that_o the_o loss_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o temporal_a thing_n be_v accompany_v with_o everlasting_a misery_n and_o destruction_n be_v not_o this_o then_o extreme_a folly_n to_o forfeit_v heaven_n for_o earth_n and_o not_o only_o to_o lose_v everlasting_a salvation_n for_o earthly_a thing_n but_o also_o to_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o everlasting_a misery_n and_o destruction_n chap._n xxix_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n use_v 1_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o circumstance_n substance_n and_o adjunct_n of_o the_o saint_n glory_n it_o will_v now_o be_v necessary_a that_o i_o make_v some_o use_n and_o improvement_n of_o what_o have_v be_v speak_v will_v god_n crown_v his_o people_n with_o glory_n and_o be_v there_o such_o a_o bless_a estate_n reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a this_o then_o in_o the_o first_o place_n may_v inform_v we_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o salvation_n of_o god_n child_n be_v so_o certain_a that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o come_v but_o as_o if_o it_o be_v already_o past_a or_o present_a even_o as_o if_o it_o be_v now_o do_v and_o not_o as_o of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v it_o be_v usual_a in_o scripture_n to_o describe_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v certain_o determine_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o if_o they_o be_v certain_o accomplish_v so_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n say_v tit._n 3.5_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o have_v save_v we_o not_o he_o will_v do_v it_o but_o he_o have_v do_v it_o by_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v eph._n 2.8_o not_o you_o shall_v be_v but_o you_o be_v who_o he_o have_v call_v they_o have_v he_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o have_v justify_v they_o also_o have_v he_o glorify_v rom._n 8.30_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o endure_v temptation_n for_o when_o he_o be_v try_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n jam._n 1.12_o from_o the_o certainty_n of_o future_a happiness_n the_o apostle_n infer_v and_o conclude_v present_a blessedness_n he_o shall_v be_v bless_v therefore_o he_o be_v bless_v 1._o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v certain_a if_o they_o look_v to_o god_n or_o to_o themselves_o to_o god_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o of_o christ_n performance_n god_n have_v purpose_v it_o therefore_o it_o shall_v inevitable_o come_v to_o pass_v all_o the_o power_n on_o earth_n or_o hell_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o divert_v it_o man_n purpose_n be_v subject_a to_o alteration_n god_n be_v not_o balaam_n himself_o can_v say_v where_o he_o bless_v none_o can_v curse_v numb_a 23.23_o if_o god_n have_v say_v it_o he_o will_v do_v it_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v it_o he_o will_v certain_o perform_v it_o certain_z it_o be_v also_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n performance_n christ_n have_v perform_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a for_o our_o salvation_n he_o have_v be_v both_o our_o ransom_n and_o our_o purchase_n ransom_v we_o from_o hell_n and_o procure_v for_o we_o a_o inheritance_n in_o heaven_n he_o be_v call_v the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n rev._n 13.8_o for_o if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o decree_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n he_o be_v so_o or_o if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o merit_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o suffering_n he_o be_v so_o to_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o have_v live_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o suffering_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v meritorious_a and_o available_a even_o to_o they_o that_o live_v before_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o that_o live_v after_o it_o as_o many_o as_o be_v save_v be_v save_v by_o it_o as_o s._n bernard_n witty_o speak_v mors_fw-la christi_fw-la prosuit_fw-la antequam_fw-la fuit_fw-la the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v profitable_a before_o it_o be_v 2._o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v certain_a also_o if_o they_o look_v to_o themselves_o if_o they_o look_v to_o what_o they_o be_v aut_fw-la re_fw-la aut_fw-la spe_fw-la either_o indeed_o or_o in_o hope_n that_o be_v either_o to_o their_o present_a estate_n or_o their_o future_a as_o to_o their_o present_a estate_n god_n have_v already_o so_o far_o give_v it_o they_o as_o he_o have_v certain_o give_v the_o seal_n and_o earnest_n of_o it_o to_o they_o they_o have_v his_o spirit_n already_o that_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o their_o adoption_n the_o earnest_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o have_v this_o they_o be_v sure_a of_o the_o other_o as_o when_o a_o man_n have_v his_o earnest_n he_o be_v
four_o king_n of_o the_o turk_n who_o hear_v that_o tamerlane_n have_v take_v his_o city_n sebastia_n and_o there_o slay_v his_o elder_a son_n orthobules_n four_o knoll'_v turkish_a history_n on_o bajazet_n four_o he_o be_v so_o much_o grieve_v at_o it_o that_o march_v with_o his_o great_a army_n against_o tamerlane_n and_o by_o the_o way_n hear_v a_o country_n shepheard_n merry_o repose_v himself_o with_o his_o homely_a pipe_n as_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o side_n of_o a_o mountain_n feed_v his_o poor_a flock_n stand_v still_o a_o great_a while_n listen_v unto_o he_o to_o the_o admiration_n of_o many_o at_o last_o fetch_v a_o deep_a sigh_n break_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n o_o happy_a shepherd_n which_o have_v neither_o orthobule_n nor_o sebastia_n to_o lose_v this_o will_v be_v all_o the_o comfort_n that_o the_o despiser_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o rejecter_n of_o everlasting_a life_n so_o free_o tender_v in_o the_o gospel_n shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o day_n when_o in_o the_o anguish_n and_o bitterness_n of_o their_o soul_n they_o shall_v cry_v out_o happy_a be_v you_o dark_a mountain_n on_o who_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n never_o shine_v happy_a you_o dry_v and_o barren_a desert_n that_o be_v never_o refresh_v with_o spiritual_a dew_n nor_o water_v with_o the_o rain_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n who_o have_v never_o any_o moses_n to_o drop_v doctrine_n upon_o you_o no_o paul_n to_o plant_v no_o apollo_n to_o water_v you_o with_o the_o word_n happy_a you_o benight_a gentile_n who_o never_o have_v any_o gospel_n nor_o a_o christ_n nor_o a_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o lose_v by_o your_o rebellion_n against_o christ_n this_o will_v be_v all_o the_o comfort_n such_o soul_n will_v have_v for_o all_o the_o privilege_n they_o have_v have_v beyond_o other_o and_o all_o the_o opportunity_n they_o have_v lose_v it_o be_v a_o honour_n here_o to_o enjoy_v god_n oracle_n and_o to_o be_v under_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o have_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n and_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o not_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n thereby_o to_o everlasting_a life_n it_o will_v turn_v to_o their_o great_a confusion_n in_o another_o world_n chap._n xxxv_o a_o exhortation_n to_o offer_v violence_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n these_o thing_n be_v so_o how_o shall_v the_o consideration_n hereof_o stir_v up_o to_o labour_n after_o eternal_a life_n and_o blessedness_n eternal_a life_n be_v the_o stipend_n of_o our_o warfare_n the_o hire_n and_o wage_n of_o our_o work_n god_n have_v not_o appoint_v heaven_n for_o idle_a drone_n and_o loiterer_n but_o for_o such_o as_o labour_v for_o it_o heaven_n be_v a_o crown_n or_o garland_n win_v it_o and_o wear_v it_o it_o be_v a_o harvest_n labour_n for_o it_o if_o thou_o will_v enjoy_v it_o it_o be_v a_o field_n of_o treasure_n thou_o must_v purchase_v it_o if_o thou_o will_v possess_v it_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a city_n and_o must_v be_v take_v by_o force_n and_o violence_n s._n bernard_n have_v this_o division_n alii_fw-la mercantur_fw-la alii_fw-la furantur_fw-la etc._n etc._n some_o do_v merchandise_n for_o heaven_n and_o they_o be_v such_o as_o make_v friend_n with_o the_o mammon_n of_o unrighteousness_n other_o do_v steal_v heaven_n and_o they_o be_v like_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v heal_v by_o the_o secret_a touch_n of_o our_o saviour_n garment_n many_o invade_v heaven_n and_o take_v it_o by_o force_n for_o indeed_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n suffer_v violence_n and_o they_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o jacob_n that_o strive_v with_o god_n wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n and_o prevail_v but_o none_o of_o these_o shall_v merit_v eternal_a life_n hereby_o but_o life_n eternal_a shall_v be_v the_o consequent_a of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o labour_n that_o strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n god_n have_v so_o ordain_v the_o one_o to_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o he_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o other_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o himself_o 2_o tim._n 4.8_o i_o have_v fight_v the_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n etc._n etc._n where_o observe_v 1._o he_o act_v like_o a_o mighty_a man_n of_o war_n fight_v valiant_o against_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o salvation_n both_o within_o and_o without_o that_o go_v about_o to_o hinder_v he_o from_o get_v the_o crown_n 2._o he_o finish_v his_o course_n he_o run_v with_o all_o his_o might_n he_o put_v forth_o himself_o to_o the_o uttermost_a that_o so_o he_o may_v finish_v his_o course_n 3._o he_o keep_v the_o faith_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v man_n or_o devil_n to_o rob_v he_o of_o this_o precious_a jewel_n and_o he_o be_v sure_a to_o speed_v here_o be_v his_o confidence_n henceforth_o say_v he_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n 27._o iren._n lib._n 4._o c._n 27._o now_o say_v irenaeus_n the_o good_a combatant_n exhort_v we_o to_o the_o combat_n of_o immortality_n that_o we_o may_v be_v crown_v and_o may_v think_v the_o crown_n precious_a as_o be_v obtain_v by_o sight_n and_o not_o of_o itself_o accrue_v to_o we_o and_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o it_o come_v by_o fight_n so_o much_o the_o more_o precious_a it_o be_v and_o the_o more_o precious_a it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o we_o may_v love_v it_o and_o aught_o so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o labour_v after_o it_o so_o run_v that_o you_o may_v obtain_v 1_o cor._n 9.24_o he_o that_o run_v for_o a_o prize_n run_v with_o all_o his_o might_n he_o run_v himself_o all_o over_o in_o a_o sweat_n i_o run_v say_v paul_n not_o as_o uncertain_o so_o fight_v i_o not_o as_o beat_v the_o air_n he_o run_v but_o not_o as_o some_o do_v in_o a_o cold_a and_o negligent_a way_n not_o know_v whether_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o race_n or_o not_o but_o with_o all_o earnestness_n as_o one_o that_o be_v resolve_v to_o finish_v his_o course_n a_o soldier_n that_o fight_v in_o the_o war_n fight_v with_o violence_n he_o fight_v for_o life_n and_o honour_n both_o so_o much_o more_o one_o that_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n even_o for_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n a_o soldier_n that_o fight_v in_o the_o war_n fight_v to_o save_v his_o own_o life_n and_o for_o glory_n beside_o so_o a_o soldier_n of_o jesus_n christ_n fight_v to_o save_v his_o life_n from_o eternal_a ruin_n and_o to_o gain_v eternal_a glory_n some_o of_o god_n child_n be_v so_o violent_a that_o the_o world_n look_v upon_o they_o as_o mad_a man_n they_o may_v think_v they_o out_o of_o their_o wit_n but_o they_o may_v answer_v with_o paul_n if_o we_o be_v beside_o ourselves_o it_o be_v for_o god_n and_o christ_n it_o be_v for_o heaven_n and_o everlasting_a salvation_n the_o apostle_n thus_o exhort_v the_o philippian_n work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n phil._n 2.12_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d break_v out_o through_o all_o difficulty_n work_v out_o work_n through_o all_o 2_o pet._n 3.11_o 12._o what_o manner_n of_o person_n ought_v you_o to_o be_v in_o all_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o hasten_v to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o express_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n such_o aught_o to_o be_v what_o exactness_n be_v require_v of_o those_o that_o will_v be_v save_v how_o they_o ought_v to_o walk_v in_o all_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n as_o person_n that_o be_v in_o haste_n to_o meet_v with_o christ_n and_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n into_o crooked_a path_n with_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n thing_n of_o the_o great_a worth_n be_v usual_o accompany_v with_o the_o great_a difficulty_n and_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v gain_v so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n the_o great_a worldly_a design_n man_n do_v pursue_v the_o more_o pain_n it_o cost_v they_o to_o attain_v their_o end_n high_a honour_n and_o a_o great_a estate_n be_v not_o get_v without_o much_o sweat_n and_o great_a endeavour_n much_o more_o when_o a_o soul_n will_v get_v a_o incorruptible_a crown_n what_o holy_a contention_n be_v require_v in_o this_o case_n though_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n have_v already_o overcome_v the_o great_a difficulty_n of_o all_o without_o which_o it_o have_v not_o be_v possible_a for_o any_o of_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n to_o have_v come_v to_o glory_n yet_o he_o will_v have_v his_o child_n conform_v to_o himself_o in_o go_v through_o many_o difficulty_n unto_o glory_n moreover_o powerful_a enemy_n do_v beset_v the_o way_n unto_o and_o entrance_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n principality_n and_o power_n the_o ruler_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n and_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a or_o heavenly_a place_n eph._n 6.12_o now_o small_a force_n in_o a_o narrow_a way_n be_v able_a to_o keep_v back_o a_o great_a army_n for_o a_o long_a time_n now_o these_o strong_a and_o mighty_a enemy_n must_v be_v remove_v by_o violence_n or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o pass_v oh_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o now_o require_v to_o break_v through_o all_o these_o and_o in_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n to_o tread_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o angel_n under_o our_o foot_n if_o we_o will_v enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n to_o march_v on_o though_o never_o so_o many_o force_n of_o the_o world_n and_o legion_n of_o hell_n shall_v stand_v in_o the_o way_n to_o contend_v mighty_o as_o know_v there_o be_v no_o middle_a condition_n between_o everlasting_a death_n and_o victory_n that_o we_o must_v overcome_v or_o perish_v how_o vigorous_o and_o vehement_o do_v the_o apostle_n press_v this_o 1_o cor._n 16.13_o watch_v you_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n quit_v yourselves_o like_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v strong_a where_o in_o most_o pithy_a and_o sinewy_a expression_n he_o give_v a_o fourfold_a exhortation_n of_o this_o kind_n and_o every_o one_o in_o the_o original_a be_v deliver_v in_o one_o word_n except_o the_o second_o the_o first_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d watch_v you_o be_v not_o secure_a but_o very_o vigilant_a the_o second_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n keep_v your_o ground_n do_v not_o give_v back_o the_o three_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d play_v the_o man_n quit_v yourselves_o like_o man_n of_o heroic_a spirit_n the_o four_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v strong_a and_o of_o a_o good_a courage_n in_o these_o quick_a expression_n the_o apostle_n as_o a_o wise_a master-builder_n seek_v out_o choice_a word_n that_o he_o may_v fasten_v they_o as_o nail_n and_o goad_n pierce_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o quicken_a their_o dull_a spirit_n to_o more_o vehemency_n and_o holy_a violence_n in_o the_o great_a business_n of_o their_o salvation_n now_o where_o these_o mighty_a strive_n after_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v they_o be_v effect_n of_o god_n eternal_a counsel_n and_o purpose_n in_o those_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o glory_n these_o be_v fruit_n of_o god_n election_n because_o god_n have_v choose_v they_o therefore_o he_o have_v stir_v they_o up_o to_o act_v violent_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n arbitr_n occuliae_fw-la praedestination●_n indicia_fw-la futurae_fw-la faelicitatis_fw-la p●ae●agia_fw-la via_fw-la regni_fw-la non_fw-la caus●_n regnandi_fw-la bernard_n de_fw-fr g●at_fw-la &_o lib._n arbitr_n they_o be_v no_o cause_n but_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o election_n their_o work_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a cause_n for_o which_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v to_o they_o but_o as_o sign_n and_o token_n that_o they_o be_v the_o person_n for_o who_o heaven_n be_v prepare_v they_o be_v token_n of_o our_o occult_a praedestination_n foretoken_n of_o our_o future_a happiness_n the_o way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o obtain_n it_o say_v devout_a bernard_n finis_fw-la